Home
  By Author [ A  B  C  D  E  F  G  H  I  J  K  L  M  N  O  P  Q  R  S  T  U  V  W  X  Y  Z |  Other Symbols ]
  By Title [ A  B  C  D  E  F  G  H  I  J  K  L  M  N  O  P  Q  R  S  T  U  V  W  X  Y  Z |  Other Symbols ]
  By Language
all Classics books content using ISYS

Download this book: [ ASCII | PDF ]

Look for this book on Amazon


We have new books nearly every day.
If you would like a news letter once a week or once a month
fill out this form and we will give you a summary of the books for that week or month by email.

Title: Miss Billy's Decision
Author: Porter, Eleanor H. (Eleanor Hodgman)
Language: English
As this book started as an ASCII text book there are no pictures available.


*** Start of this LibraryBlog Digital Book "Miss Billy's Decision" ***


MISS BILLY’S DECISION

By Eleanor H. Porter

Author of “Miss Billy,” etc.


TO My Cousin Helen


                                        CONTENTS
          CHAPTER
          I.      CALDERWELL DOES SOME TALKING
          II.     AUNT HANNAH GETS A LETTER
          III.    BILLY AND BERTRAM
          IV.     FOR MARY JANE
          V.      MARIE SPEAKS HER MIND
          VI.     AT THE SIGN OF THE PINK
          VII.    OLD FRIENDS AND NEW
          VIII.   M. J. OPENS THE GAME
          IX.     A RUG, A PICTURE, AND A GIRL AFRAID
          X.      A JOB FOR PETE--AND FOR BERTRAM
          XI.     A CLOCK AND AUNT HANNAH
          XII.    SISTER KATE
          XIII.   CYRIL AND A WEDDING
          XIV.    M. J. MAKES ANOTHER MOVE
          XV.     “MR. BILLY” AND “MISS MARY JANE”
           XVI.    A GIRL AND A BIT OF LOWESTOFT
          XVII.   ONLY A LOVE SONG, BUT--
          XVIII.  SUGARPLUMS
          XIX.    ALICE GREGGORY
          XX.     ARKWRIGHT TELLS A STORY
          XXI.    A MATTER OF STRAIGHT BUSINESS
          XXII.   PLANS AND PLOTTINGS
          XXIII.  THE CAUSE AND BERTRAM
          XXIV.   THE ARTIST AND HIS ART
          XXV.    THE OPERETTA
          XXVI.   ARKWRIGHT TELLS ANOTHER STORY
          XXVII.  THE THING THAT WAS THE TRUTH
          XXVIII. BILLY TAKES HER TURN
          XXIX.   KATE WRITES A LETTER
          XXX.    “I’VE HINDERED HIM”
           XXXI.   FLIGHT
          XXXII.  PETE TO THE RESCUE
          XXXIII. BERTRAM TAKES THE REINS



MISS BILLY’S DECISION



CHAPTER I. CALDERWELL DOES SOME TALKING


Calderwell had met Mr. M. J. Arkwright in London through a common
friend; since then they had tramped half over Europe together in a
comradeship that was as delightful as it was unusual. As Calderwell put
it in a letter to his sister, Belle:

“We smoke the same cigar and drink the same tea (he’s just as much of
an old woman on that subject as I am!), and we agree beautifully on
all necessary points of living, from tipping to late sleeping in the
morning; while as for politics and religion--we disagree in those just
enough to lend spice to an otherwise tame existence.”

Farther along in this same letter Calderwell touched upon his new friend
again.

“I admit, however, I would like to know his name. To find out what that
mysterious ‘M. J.’ stands for has got to be pretty nearly an obsession
with me. I am about ready to pick his pocket or rifle his trunk in
search of some lurking ‘Martin’ or ‘John’ that will set me at peace. As
it is, I confess that I have ogled his incoming mail and his outgoing
baggage shamelessly, only to be slapped in the face always and
everlastingly by that bland ‘M. J.’ I’ve got my revenge, now, though. To
myself I call him ‘Mary Jane’--and his broad-shouldered, brown-bearded
six feet of muscular manhood would so like to be called ‘Mary Jane’!
By the way, Belle, if you ever hear of murder and sudden death in my
direction, better set the sleuths on the trail of Arkwright. Six to one
you’ll find I called him ‘Mary Jane’ to his face!”

Calderwell was thinking of that letter now, as he sat at a small table
in a Paris café. Opposite him was the six feet of muscular manhood,
broad shoulders, pointed brown beard, and all--and he had just addressed
it, inadvertently, as “Mary Jane.”

During the brief, sickening moment of silence after the name had left
his lips, Calderwell was conscious of a whimsical realization of the
lights, music, and laughter all about him.

“Well, I chose as safe a place as I could!” he was thinking. Then
Arkwright spoke.

“How long since you’ve been in correspondence with members of my
family?”

“Eh?”

Arkwright laughed grimly.

“Perhaps you thought of it yourself, then--I’ll admit you’re capable of
it,” he nodded, reaching for a cigar. “But it so happens you hit upon my
family’s favorite name for me.”

“_Mary Jane!_ You mean they actually _call_ you that?”

“Yes,” bowed the big fellow, calmly, as he struck a light.
“Appropriate!--don’t you think?”

Calderwell did not answer. He thought he could not.

“Well, silence gives consent, they say,” laughed the other. “Anyhow, you
must have had _some_ reason for calling me that.”

“Arkwright, what _does_ ‘M. J.’ stand for?” demanded Calderwell.

“Oh, is that it?” smiled the man opposite. “Well, I’ll own those
initials have been something of a puzzle to people. One man declares
they’re ‘Merely Jokes’; but another, not so friendly, says they stand
for ‘Mostly Jealousy’ of more fortunate chaps who have real names for
a handle. My small brothers and sisters, discovering, with the usual
perspicacity of one’s family on such matters, that I never signed, or
called myself anything but ‘M. J.,’ dubbed me ‘Mary Jane.’ And there you
have it.”

“Mary Jane! You!”

Arkwright smiled oddly.

“Oh, well, what’s the difference? Would you deprive them of their
innocent amusement? And they do so love that ‘Mary Jane’! Besides,
what’s in a name, anyway?” he went on, eyeing the glowing tip of the
cigar between his fingers. “‘A rose by any other name--’--you’ve
heard that, probably. Names don’t always signify, my dear fellow. For
instance, I know a ‘Billy’--but he’s a girl.”

Calderwell gave a sudden start.

“You don’t mean Billy--Neilson?”

The other turned sharply.

“Do _you_ know Billy Neilson?”

Calderwell gave his friend a glance from scornful eyes.

“Do I know Billy Neilson?” he cried. “Does a fellow usually know the
girl he’s proposed to regularly once in three months? Oh, I know I’m
telling tales out of school, of course,” he went on, in response to the
look that had come into the brown eyes opposite. “But what’s the use?
Everybody knows it--that knows us. Billy herself got so she took it as
a matter of course--and refused as a matter of course, too; just as she
would refuse a serving of apple pie at dinner, if she hadn’t wanted it.”

“Apple pie!” scouted Arkwright.

Calderwell shrugged his shoulders.

“My dear fellow, you don’t seem to realize it, but for the last six
months you have been assisting at the obsequies of a dead romance.”

“Indeed! And is it--buried, yet?”

“Oh, no,” sighed Calderwell, cheerfully. “I shall go back one of these
days, I’ll warrant, and begin the same old game again; though I will
acknowledge that the last refusal was so very decided that it’s been a
year, almost, since I received it. I think I was really convinced, for
a while, that--that she didn’t want that apple pie,” he finished with
a whimsical lightness that did not quite coincide with the stern lines
that had come to his mouth.

For a moment there was silence, then Calderwell spoke again.

“Where did you know--Miss Billy?”

“Oh, I don’t know her at all. I know of her--through Aunt Hannah.”

Calderwell sat suddenly erect.

“Aunt Hannah! Is she your aunt, too? Jove! This _is_ a little old world,
after all; isn’t it?”

“She isn’t my aunt. She’s my mother’s third cousin. None of us have seen
her for years, but she writes to mother occasionally; and, of course,
for some time now, her letters have been running over full of Billy. She
lives with her, I believe; doesn’t she?”

“She does,” rejoined Calderwell, with an unexpected chuckle. “I wonder
if you know how she happened to live with her, at first.”

“Why, no, I reckon not. What do you mean?”

Calderwell chuckled again.

“Well, I’ll tell you. You, being a ‘Mary Jane,’ ought to appreciate it.
You see, Billy was named for one William Henshaw, her father’s chum,
who promptly forgot all about her. At eighteen, Billy, being left quite
alone in the world, wrote to ‘Uncle William’ and asked to come and live
with him.”

“Well?”

“But it wasn’t well. William was a forty-year-old widower who lived with
two younger brothers, an old butler, and a Chinese cook in one of those
funny old Beacon Street houses in Boston. ‘The Strata,’ Bertram called
it. Bright boy--Bertram!”

“The Strata!”

“Yes. I wish you could see that house, Arkwright. It’s a regular layer
cake. Cyril--he’s the second brother; must be thirty-four or five
now--lives on the top floor in a rugless, curtainless, music-mad
existence--just a plain crank. Below him comes William. William collects
things--everything from tenpenny nails to teapots, I should say, and
they’re all there in his rooms. Farther down somewhere comes Bertram.
He’s _the_ Bertram Henshaw, you understand; the artist.”

“Not the ‘Face-of-a-Girl’ Henshaw?”

“The same; only of course four years ago he wasn’t quite so well known
as he is now. Well, to resume and go on. It was into this house, this
masculine paradise ruled over by Pete and Dong Ling in the kitchen, that
Billy’s naïve request for a home came.”

“Great Scott!” breathed Arkwright, appreciatively.

“Yes. Well, the letter was signed ‘Billy.’ They took her for a boy,
naturally, and after something of a struggle they agreed to let ‘him’
come. For his particular delectation they fixed up a room next to
Bertram with guns and fishing rods, and such ladylike specialties; and
William went to the station to meet the boy.”

“With never a suspicion?”

“With never a suspicion.”

“Gorry!”

“Well, ‘he’ came, and ‘she’ conquered. I guess things were lively for
a while, though. Oh, there was a kitten, too, I believe, ‘Spunk,’ who
added to the gayety of nations.”

“But what did the Henshaws do?”

“Well, I wasn’t there, of course; but Bertram says they spun around like
tops gone mad for a time, but finally quieted down enough to summon a
married sister for immediate propriety, and to establish Aunt Hannah for
permanency the next day.”

“So that’s how it happened! Well, by George!” cried Arkwright.

“Yes,” nodded the other. “So you see there are untold possibilities just
in a name. Remember that. Just suppose _you_, as Mary Jane, should beg a
home in a feminine household--say in Miss Billy’s, for instance!”

“I’d like to,” retorted Arkwright, with sudden warmth.

Calderwell stared a little.

The other laughed shamefacedly.

“Oh, it’s only that I happen to have a devouring curiosity to meet
that special young lady. I sing her songs (you know she’s written some
dandies!), I’ve heard a lot about her, and I’ve seen her picture.”
 (He did not add that he had also purloined that same picture from his
mother’s bureau--the picture being a gift from Aunt Hannah.) “So you
see I would, indeed, like to occupy a corner in the fair Miss Billy’s
household. I could write to Aunt Hannah and beg a home with her, you
know; eh?”

“Of course! Why don’t you--‘Mary Jane’?” laughed Calderwell. “Billy’d
take you all right. She’s had a little Miss Hawthorn, a music teacher,
there for months. She’s always doing stunts of that sort. Belle writes
me that she’s had a dozen forlornites there all this last summer, two
or three at a time-tired widows, lonesome old maids, and crippled
kids--just to give them a royal good time. So you see she’d take you,
without a doubt. Jove! what a pair you’d make: Miss Billy and Mr. Mary
Jane! You’d drive the suffragettes into conniption fits--just by the
sound of you!”

Arkwright laughed quietly; then he frowned.

“But how about it?” he asked. “I thought she was keeping house with Aunt
Hannah. Didn’t she stay at all with the Henshaws?”

“Oh, yes, a few months. I never knew just why she did leave, but I
fancied, from something Billy herself said once, that she discovered she
was creating rather too much of an upheaval in the Strata. So she took
herself off. She went to school, and travelled considerably. She was
over here when I met her first. After that she was with us all one
summer on the yacht. A couple of years ago, or so, she went back to
Boston, bought a house and settled down with Aunt Hannah.”

“And she’s not married--or even engaged?”

“Wasn’t the last I heard. I haven’t seen her since December, and I’ve
heard from her only indirectly. She corresponds with my sister, and so
do I--intermittently. I heard a month ago from Belle, and _she_ had a
letter from Billy in August. But I heard nothing of any engagement.”

“How about the Henshaws? I should think there might be a chance there
for a romance--a charming girl, and three unattached men.”

Calderwell gave a slow shake of the head.

“I don’t think so. William is--let me see--nearly forty-five, I guess,
by this time; and he isn’t a marrying man. He buried his heart with his
wife and baby years ago. Cyril, according to Bertram, ‘hates women
and all other confusion,’ so that ought to let him out. As for Bertram
himself--Bertram is ‘only Bertram.’ He’s always been that. Bertram loves
girls--to paint; but I can’t imagine him making serious love to any one.
It would always be the tilt of a chin or the turn of a cheek that he was
admiring--to paint. No, there’s no chance for a romance there, I’ll
warrant.”

“But there’s--yourself.”

Calderwell’s eyebrows rose the fraction of an inch.

“Oh, of course. I presume January or February will find me back there,”
 he admitted with a sigh and a shrug. Then, a little bitterly, he added:
“No, Arkwright. I shall keep away if I can. I _know_ there’s no chance
for me--now.”

“Then you’ll leave me a clear field?” bantered the other.

“Of course--‘Mary Jane,’” retorted Calderwell, with equal lightness.

“Thank you.”

“Oh, you needn’t,” laughed Calderwell. “My giving you the right of way
doesn’t insure you a thoroughfare for yourself--there are others, you
know. Billy Neilson has had sighing swains about I her, I imagine, since
she could walk and talk. She is a wonderfully fascinating little bit of
femininity, and she has a heart of pure gold. All is, I envy the man who
wins it--for the man who wins that, wins her.”

There was no answer. Arkwright sat with his eyes on the moving throng
outside the window near them. Perhaps he had not heard. At all events,
when he spoke some time later, it was of a matter far removed from Miss
Billy Neilson, or the way to her heart. Nor was the young lady mentioned
between them again that day.

Long hours later, just before parting for the night, Arkwright said:

“Calderwell, I’m sorry, but I believe, after all, I can’t take that trip
to the lakes with you. I--I’m going home next week.”

“Home! Hang it, Arkwright! I’d counted on you. Isn’t this rather
sudden?”

“Yes, and no. I’ll own I’ve been drifting about with you contentedly
enough for the last six months to make you think mountain-climbing and
boat-paddling were the end and aim of my existence. But they aren’t, you
know, really.”

“Nonsense! At heart you’re as much of a vagabond as I am; and you know
it.”

“Perhaps. But unfortunately I don’t happen to carry your pocketbook.”

“You may, if you like. I’ll hand it over any time,” grinned Calderwell.

“Thanks. You know well enough what I mean,” shrugged the other.

There was a moment’s silence; then Calderwell queried:

“Arkwright, how old are you?”

“Twenty-four.”

“Good! Then you’re merely travelling to supplement your education, see?”

“Oh, yes, I see. But something besides my education has got to be
supplemented now, I reckon.”

“What are you going to do?”

There was an almost imperceptible hesitation; then, a little shortly,
came the answer:

“Hit the trail for Grand Opera, and bring up, probably--in vaudeville.”

Calderwell smiled appreciatively.

“You _can_ sing like the devil,” he admitted.

“Thanks,” returned his friend, with uplifted eyebrows. “Do you mind
calling it ‘an angel’--just for this occasion?”

“Oh, the matinée-girls will do that fast enough. But, I say,
Arkwright, what are you going to do with those initials then?”

“Let ‘em alone.”

“Oh, no, you won’t. And you won’t be ‘Mary Jane,’ either. Imagine a Mary
Jane in Grand Opera! I know what you’ll be. You’ll be ‘Señor Martini
Johnini Arkwrightino’! By the way, you didn’t say what that ‘M. J.’
really did stand for,” hinted Calderwell, shamelessly.

“‘Merely Jokes’--in your estimation, evidently,” shrugged the other.
“But my going isn’t a joke, Calderwell. I’m really going. And I’m going
to work.”

“But--how shall you manage?”

“Time will tell.”

Calderwell frowned and stirred restlessly in his chair.

“But, honestly, now, to--to follow that trail of yours will take
money. And--er--” a faint red stole to his forehead--“don’t they
have--er--patrons for these young and budding geniuses? Why can’t I have
a hand in this trail, too--or maybe you’d call it a foot, eh? I’d be no
end glad to, Arkwright.”

“Thanks, old man.” The red was duplicated this time above the brown
silky beard. “That was mighty kind of you, and I appreciate it; but it
won’t be necessary. A generous, but perhaps misguided bachelor uncle
left me a few thousands a year or so ago; and I’m going to put them all
down my throat--or rather, _into_ it--before I give up.”

“Where you going to study? New York?”

Again there was an almost imperceptible hesitation before the answer
came.

“I’m not quite prepared to say.”

“Why not try it here?”

Arkwright shook his head.

“I did plan to, when I came over but I’ve changed my mind. I believe I’d
rather work while longer in America.”

“Hm-m,” murmured Calderwell.

There was a brief silence, followed by other questions and other
answers; after which the friends said good night.

In his own room, as he was dropping off to sleep, Calderwell muttered
drowsily:

“By George! I haven’t found out yet what that blamed ‘M. J.’ stands
for!”



CHAPTER II. AUNT HANNAH GETS A LETTER


In the cozy living-room at Hillside, Billy Neilson’s pretty home on
Corey Hill, Billy herself sat writing at the desk. Her pen had just
traced the date, “October twenty-fifth,” when Mrs. Stetson entered with
a letter in her hand.

“Writing, my dear? Then don’t let me disturb you.” She turned as if to
go.

Billy dropped her pen, sprang to her feet, flew to the little woman’s
side and whirled her half across the room.

“There!” she exclaimed, as she plumped the breathless and scandalized
Aunt Hannah into the biggest easy chair. “I feel better. I just had to
let off steam some way. It’s so lovely you came in just when you did!”

“Indeed! I--I’m not so sure of that,” stammered the lady, dropping the
letter into her lap, and patting with agitated fingers her cap, her
curls, the two shawls about her shoulders, and the lace at her throat.
“My grief and conscience, Billy! Wors’t you _ever_ grow up?”

“Hope not,” purred Billy cheerfully, dropping herself on to a low
hassock at Aunt Hannah’s feet.

“But, my dear, you--you’re engaged!”

Billy bubbled into a chuckling laugh.

“As if I didn’t know that, when I’ve just written a dozen notes to
announce it! And, oh, Aunt Hannah, such a time as I’ve had, telling what
a dear Bertram is, and how I love, love, _love_ him, and what beautiful
eyes he has, and _such_ a nose, and--”

“Billy!” Aunt Hannah was sitting erect in pale horror.

“Eh?” Billy’s eyes were roguish.

“You didn’t write that in those notes!”

“Write it? Oh, no! That’s only what I _wanted_ to write,” chuckled
Billy. “What I really did write was as staid and proper as--here, let me
show you,” she broke off, springing to her feet and running over to her
desk. “There! this is about what I wrote to them all,” she finished,
whipping a note out of one of the unsealed envelopes on the desk and
spreading it open before Aunt Hannah’s suspicious eyes.

“Hm-m; that is very good--for you,” admitted the lady.

“Well, I like that!--after all my stern self-control and self-sacrifice
to keep out all those things I _wanted_ to write,” bridled Billy.
“Besides, they’d have been ever so much more interesting reading than
these will be,” she pouted, as she took the note from her companion’s
hand.

“I don’t doubt it,” observed Aunt Hannah, dryly.

Billy laughed, and tossed the note back on the desk.

“I’m writing to Belle Calderwell, now,” she announced musingly, dropping
herself again on the hassock. “I suppose she’ll tell Hugh.”

“Poor boy! He’ll be disappointed.”

Billy sighed, but she uptilted her chin a little.

“He ought not to be. I told him long, long ago, the very first time,
that--that I couldn’t.”

“I know, dear; but--they don’t always understand.” Aunt Hannah sighed
in sympathy with the far-away Hugh Calderwell, as she looked down at the
bright young face near her.

There was a moment’s silence; then Billy gave a little laugh.

“He _will_ be surprised,” she said. “He told me once that Bertram
wouldn’t ever care for any girl except to paint. To paint, indeed! As
if Bertram didn’t love me--just _me!_--if he never saw another tube of
paint!”

“I think he does, my dear.”

Again there was silence; then, from Billy’s lips there came softly:

“Just think; we’ve been engaged almost four weeks--and to-morrow it’ll
be announced. I’m so glad I didn’t ever announce the other two!”

“The other _two!_” cried Aunt Hannah.

Billy laughed.

“Oh, I forgot. You didn’t know about Cyril.”

“Cyril!”

“Oh, there didn’t anybody know it, either not even Cyril himself,”
 dimpled Billy, mischievously. “I just engaged myself to him in
imagination, you know, to see how I’d like it. I didn’t like it. But
it didn’t last, anyhow, very long--just three weeks, I believe. Then I
broke it off,” she finished, with unsmiling mouth, but dancing eyes.

“Billy!” protested Aunt Hannah, feebly.

“But I _am_ glad only the family knew about my engagement to Uncle
William--oh, Aunt Hannah, you don’t know how good it does seem to call
him ‘Uncle’ again. It was always slipping out, anyhow, all the time we
were engaged; and of course it was awful then.”

“That only goes to prove, my dear, how entirely unsuitable it was, from
the start.”

A bright color flooded Billy’s face.

“I know; but if a girl _will_ think a man is asking for a wife when all
he wants is a daughter, and if she blandly says ‘Yes, thank you, I’ll
marry you,’ I don’t know what you can expect!”

“You can expect just what you got--misery, and almost a tragedy,”
 retorted Aunt Hannah, severely.

A tender light came into Billy’s eyes.

“Dear Uncle William! What a jewel he was, all the way through! And he’d
have marched straight to the altar, too, with never a flicker of an
eyelid, I know--self-sacrificing martyr that he was!”

“Martyr!” bristled Aunt Hannah, with extraordinary violence for her.
“I’m thinking that term belonged somewhere else. A month ago, Billy
Neilson, you did not look as if you’d live out half your days. But I
suppose _you’d_ have gone to the altar, too, with never a flicker of an
eyelid!”

“But I thought I had to,” protested Billy. “I couldn’t grieve Uncle
William so, after Mrs. Hartwell had said how he--he wanted me.”

Aunt Hannah’s lips grew stern at the corners.

“There are times when--when I think it would be wiser if Mrs. Kate
Hartwell would attend to her own affairs!” Aunt Hannah’s voice fairly
shook with wrath.

“Why-Aunt Hannah!” reproved Billy in mischievous horror. “I’m shocked at
you!”

Aunt Hannah flushed miserably.

“There, there, child, forget I said it. I ought not to have said it, of
course,” she murmured agitatedly.

Billy laughed.

“You should have heard what Uncle William said! But never mind. We all
found out the mistake before it was too late, and everything is lovely
now, even to Cyril and Marie. Did you ever see anything so beatifically
happy as that couple are? Bertram says he hasn’t heard a dirge from
Cyril’s rooms for three weeks; and that if anybody else played the kind
of music he’s been playing, it would be just common garden ragtime!”

“Music! Oh, my grief and conscience! That makes me think, Billy. If I’m
not actually forgetting what I came in here for,” cried Aunt Hannah,
fumbling in the folds of her dress for the letter that had slipped from
her lap. “I’ve had word from a young niece. She’s going to study music
in Boston.”

“A niece?”

“Well, not really, you know. She calls me ‘Aunt,’ just as you and the
Henshaw boys do. But I really am related to _her_, for her mother and I
are third cousins, while it was my husband who was distantly related to
the Henshaw family.”

“What’s her name?”

“‘Mary Jane Arkwright.’ Where is that letter?”

“Here it is, on the floor,” reported Billy. “Were you going to read it
to me?” she asked, as she picked it up.

“Yes--if you don’t mind.”

“I’d love to hear it.”

“Then I’ll read it. It--it rather annoys me in some ways. I thought the
whole family understood that I wasn’t living by myself any longer--that
I was living with you. I’m sure I thought I wrote them that, long ago.
But this sounds almost as if they didn’t understand it--at least, as if
this girl didn’t.”

“How old is she?”

“I don’t know; but she must be some old, to be coming here to Boston to
study music, alone--singing, I think she said.”

“You don’t remember her, then?”

Aunt Hannah frowned and paused, the letter half withdrawn from its
envelope.

“No--but that isn’t strange. They live West. I haven’t seen any of them
for years. I know there are several children--and I suppose I’ve been
told their names. I know there’s a boy--the eldest, I think--who is
quite a singer, and there’s a girl who paints, I believe; but I don’t
seem to remember a ‘Mary Jane.’”

“Never mind! Suppose we let Mary Jane speak for herself,” suggested
Billy, dropping her chin into the small pink cup of her hand, and
settling herself to listen.

“Very well,” sighed Aunt Hannah; and she opened the letter and began to
read.


     “DEAR AUNT HANNAH:--This is to tell you
     that I’m coming to Boston to study singing in
     the school for Grand Opera, and I’m planning to
     look you up. Do you object? I said to a friend
     the other day that I’d half a mind to write to Aunt
     Hannah and beg a home with her; and my friend
     retorted: ‘Why don’t you, Mary Jane?’ But
     that, of course, I should not think of doing.

     “But I know I shall be lonesome, Aunt Hannah,
     and I hope you’ll let me see you once in a
     while, anyway. I plan now to come next week
     --I’ve already got as far as New York, as you see
     by the address--and I shall hope to see you
     soon.

     “All the family would send love, I know.
                  “M. J. ARKWRIGHT.”


“Grand Opera! Oh, how perfectly lovely,” cried Billy.

“Yes, but Billy, do you think she is expecting me to invite her to make
her home with me? I shall have to write and explain that I can’t--if she
does, of course.”

Billy frowned and hesitated.

“Why, it sounded--a little--that way; but--” Suddenly her face cleared.
“Aunt Hannah, I’ve thought of the very thing. We _will_ take her!”

“Oh, Billy, I couldn’t think of letting you do that,” demurred Aunt
Hannah. “You’re very kind--but, oh, no; not that!”

“Why not? I think it would be lovely; and we can just as well as not.
After Marie is married in December, she can have that room. Until then
she can have the little blue room next to me.”

“But--but--we don’t know anything about her.”

“We know she’s your niece, and she’s lonesome; and we know she’s
musical. I shall love her for every one of those things. Of course we’ll
take her!”

“But--I don’t know anything about her age.”

“All the more reason why she should be looked out for, then,” retorted
Billy, promptly. “Why, Aunt Hannah, just as if you didn’t want to give
this lonesome, unprotected young girl a home!”

“Oh, I do, of course; but--”

“Then it’s all settled,” interposed Billy, springing to her feet.

“But what if we--we shouldn’t like her?”

“Nonsense! What if she shouldn’t like us?” laughed Billy. “However, if
you’d feel better, just ask her to come and stay with us a month. We
shall keep her all right, afterwards. See if we don’t!”

Slowly Aunt Hannah got to her feet.

“Very well, dear. I’ll write, of course, as you tell me to; and it’s
lovely of you to do it. Now I’ll leave you to your letters. I’ve
hindered you far too long, as it is.”

“You’ve rested me,” declared Billy, flinging wide her arms.

Aunt Hannah, fearing a second dizzying whirl impelled by those same
young arms, drew her shawls about her shoulders and backed hastily
toward the hall door.

Billy laughed.

“Oh, I won’t again--to-day,” she promised merrily. Then, as the lady
reached the arched doorway: “Tell Mary Jane to let us know the day
and train and we’ll meet her. Oh, and Aunt Hannah, tell her to wear a
pink--a white pink; and tell her we will, too,” she finished gayly.



CHAPTER III. BILLY AND BERTRAM


Bertram called that evening. Before the open fire in the living-room he
found a pensive Billy awaiting him--a Billy who let herself be kissed,
it is true, and who even kissed back, shyly, adorably; but a Billy who
looked at him with wide, almost frightened eyes.

“Why, darling, what’s the matter?” he demanded, his own eyes growing
wide and frightened.

“Bertram, it’s--done!”

“What’s done? What do you mean?”

“Our engagement. It’s--announced. I wrote stacks of notes to-day,
and even now there are some left for to-morrow. And then there’s--the
newspapers. Bertram, right away, now, _everybody_ will know it.” Her
voice was tragic.

Bertram relaxed visibly. A tender light came to his eyes.

“Well, didn’t you expect everybody would know it, my dear?”

“Y-yes; but--”

At her hesitation, the tender light changed to a quick fear.

“Billy, you aren’t--sorry?”

The pink glory that suffused her face answered him before her words did.

“Sorry! Oh, never, Bertram! It’s only that it won’t be ours any
longer--that is, it won’t belong to just our two selves. Everybody will
know it. And they’ll bow and smile and say ‘How lovely!’ to our faces,
and ‘Did you ever?’ to our backs. Oh, no, I’m not sorry, Bertram; but I
am--afraid.”

“_Afraid_--Billy!”

“Yes.”

Billy sighed, and gazed with pensive eyes into the fire.

Across Bertram’s face swept surprise, consternation, and dismay. Bertram
had thought he knew Billy in all her moods and fancies; but he did not
know her in this one.

“Why, Billy!” he breathed.

Billy drew another sigh. It seemed to come from the very bottoms of her
small, satin-slippered feet.

“Well, I am. You’re _the_ Bertram Henshaw. You know lots and lots of
people that I never even saw. And they’ll come and stand around and
stare and lift their lorgnettes and say: ‘Is that the one? Dear me!’”

Bertram gave a relieved laugh.

“Nonsense, sweetheart! I should think you were a picture I’d painted and
hung on a wall.”

“I shall feel as if I were--with all those friends of yours. Bertram,
what if they don’t like it?” Her voice had grown tragic again.

“_Like_ it!”

“Yes. The picture--me, I mean.”

“They can’t help liking it,” he retorted, with the prompt certainty of
an adoring lover.

Billy shook her head. Her eyes had gone back to the fire.

“Oh, yes, they can. I can hear them. ‘What, _she_--Bertram Henshaw’s
wife?--a frivolous, inconsequential “Billy” like that?’ Bertram!”--Billy
turned fiercely despairing eyes on her lover--“Bertram, sometimes I
wish my name were ‘Clarissa Cordelia,’ or ‘Arabella Maud,’ or ‘Hannah
Jane’--anything that’s feminine and proper!”

Bertram’s ringing laugh brought a faint smile to Billy’s lips. But the
words that followed the laugh, and the caressing touch of the man’s
hands sent a flood of shy color to her face.

“‘Hannah Jane,’ indeed! As if I’d exchange my Billy for her or any
Clarissa or Arabella that ever grew! I adore Billy--flame, nature,
and--”

“And naughtiness?” put in Billy herself.

“Yes--if there be any,” laughed Bertram, fondly. “But, see,” he added,
taking a tiny box from his pocket, “see what I’ve brought for this same
Billy to wear. She’d have had it long ago if she hadn’t insisted on
waiting for this announcement business.”

“Oh, Bertram, what a beauty!” dimpled Billy, as the flawless diamond in
Bertram’s fingers caught the light and sent it back in a flash of flame
and crimson.

“Now you are mine--really mine, sweetheart!” The man’s voice and hand
shook as he slipped the ring on Billy’s outstretched finger.

Billy caught her breath with almost a sob.

“And I’m so glad to be--yours, dear,” she murmured brokenly. “And--and
I’ll make you proud that I am yours, even if I am just ‘Billy,’” she
choked. “Oh, I know I’ll write such beautiful, beautiful songs now.”

The man drew her into a close embrace.

“As if I cared for that,” he scoffed lovingly.

Billy looked up in quick horror.

“Why, Bertram, you don’t mean you don’t--care?”

He laughed lightly, and took the dismayed little face between his two
hands.

“Care, darling? of course I care! You know how I love your music. I
care about everything that concerns you. I meant that I’m proud of you
_now_--just you. I love _you_, you know.”

There was a moment’s pause. Billy’s eyes, as they looked at him, carried
a curious intentness in their dark depths.

“You mean, you like--the turn of my head and the tilt of my chin?” she
asked a little breathlessly.

“I adore them!” came the prompt answer.

To Bertram’s utter amazement, Billy drew back with a sharp cry.

“No, no--not that!”

“Why, _Billy!_”

Billy laughed unexpectedly; then she sighed.

“Oh, it’s all right, of course,” she assured him hastily. “It’s only--”
 Billy stopped and blushed. Billy was thinking of what Hugh Calderwell
had once said to her: that Bertram Henshaw would never love any girl
seriously; that it would always be the turn of her head or the tilt of
her chin that he loved--to paint.

“Well; only what?” demanded Bertram.

Billy blushed the more deeply, but she gave a light laugh.

“Nothing, only something Hugh Calderwell said to me once. You see,
Bertram, I don’t think Hugh ever thought you would--marry.”

“Oh, didn’t he?” bridled Bertram. “Well, that only goes to show how much
he knows about it. Er--did you announce it--to him?” Bertram’s voice was
almost savage now.

Billy smiled.

“No; but I did to his sister, and she’ll tell him. Oh, Bertram, such a
time as I had over those notes,” went on Billy, with a chuckle. Her
eyes were dancing, and she was seeming more like her usual self, Bertram
thought. “You see there were such a lot of things I wanted to say, about
what a dear you were, and how much I--I liked you, and that you had such
lovely eyes, and a nose--”

“Billy!” This time it was Bertram who was sitting erect in pale horror.

Billy threw him a roguish glance.

“Goosey! You are as bad as Aunt Hannah! I said that was what I _wanted_
to say. What I really said was--quite another matter,” she finished with
a saucy uptilting of her chin.

Bertram relaxed with a laugh.

“You witch!” His admiring eyes still lingered on her face. “Billy, I’m
going to paint you sometime in just that pose. You’re adorable!”

“Pooh! Just another face of a girl,” teased the adorable one.

Bertram gave a sudden exclamation.

“There! And I haven’t told you, yet. Guess what my next commission is.”

“To paint a portrait?”

“Yes.”

“Can’t. Who is it?”

“J. G. Winthrop’s daughter.”

“Not _the_ J. G. Winthrop?”

“The same.”

“Oh, Bertram, how splendid!”

“Isn’t it? And then the girl herself! Have you seen her? But you
haven’t, I know, unless you met her abroad. She hasn’t been in Boston
for years until now.”

“No, I haven’t seen her. Is she so _very_ beautiful?” Billy spoke a
little soberly.

“Yes--and no.” The artist lifted his head alertly. What Billy called
his “painting look” came to his face. “It isn’t that her features are so
regular--though her mouth and chin are perfect. But her face has so much
character, and there’s an elusive something about her eyes--Jove! If
I can only catch it, it’ll be the best thing yet that I’ve ever done,
Billy.”

“Will it? I’m so glad--and you’ll get it, I know you will,” claimed
Billy, clearing her throat a little nervously.

“I wish I felt so sure,” sighed Bertram. “But it’ll be a great thing if
I do get it--J. G. Winthrop’s daughter, you know, besides the merit of
the likeness itself.”

“Yes; yes, indeed!” Billy cleared her throat again. “You’ve seen her, of
course, lately?”

“Oh, yes. I was there half the morning discussing the details--sittings
and costume, and deciding on the pose.”

“Did you find one--to suit?”

“Find one!” The artist made a despairing gesture. “I found a dozen that
I wanted. The trouble was to tell which I wanted the most.”

Billy gave a nervous little laugh.

“Isn’t that--unusual?” she asked.

Bertram lifted his eyebrows with a quizzical smile.

“Well, they aren’t all Marguerite Winthrops,” he reminded her.

“Marguerite!” cried Billy. “Oh, is her name Marguerite? I do think
Marguerite is the dearest name!” Billy’s eyes and voice were wistful.

“I don’t--not the _dearest_. Oh, it’s all well enough, of course, but it
can’t be compared for a moment to--well, say, ‘Billy’!”

Billy smiled, but she shook her head.

“I’m afraid you’re not a good judge of names,” she objected.

“Yes, I am; though, for that matter, I should love your name, no matter
what it was.”

“Even if ‘twas ‘Mary Jane,’ eh?” bantered Billy. “Well, you’ll have a
chance to find out how you like that name pretty quick, sir. We’re going
to have one here.”

“You’re going to have a Mary Jane here? Do you mean that Rosa’s going
away?”

“Mercy! I hope not,” shuddered Billy. “You don’t find a Rosa in every
kitchen--and never in employment agencies! My Mary Jane is a niece of
Aunt Hannah’s,--or rather, a cousin. She’s coming to Boston to study
music, and I’ve invited her here. We’ve asked her for a month, though I
presume we shall keep her right along.”

Bertram frowned.

“Well, of course, that’s very nice for--_Mary Jane_,” he sighed with
meaning emphasis.

Billy laughed.

“Don’t worry, dear. She won’t bother us any.”

“Oh, yes, she will,” sighed Bertram. “She’ll be ‘round--lots; you see
if she isn’t. Billy, I think sometimes you’re almost too kind--to other
folks.”

“Never!” laughed Billy. “Besides, what would you have me do when a
lonesome young girl was coming to Boston? Anyhow, _you’re_ not the one
to talk, young man. I’ve known _you_ to take in a lonesome girl and give
her a home,” she flashed merrily.

Bertram chuckled.

“Jove! What a time that was!” he exclaimed, regarding his companion with
fond eyes. “And Spunk, too! Is she going to bring a Spunk?”

“Not that I’ve heard,” smiled Billy; “but she _is_ going to wear a
pink.”

“Not really, Billy?”

“Of course she is! I told her to. How do you suppose we could know her
when we saw her, if she didn’t?” demanded the girl, indignantly. “And
what is more, sir, there will be _two_ pinks worn this time. _I_ sha’n’t
do as Uncle William did, and leave off my pink. Only think what long
minutes--that seemed hours of misery--I spent waiting there in that
train-shed, just because I didn’t know which man was my Uncle William!”

Bertram laughed and shrugged his shoulders.

“Well, your Mary Jane won’t probably turn out to be quite such a
bombshell as our Billy did--unless she should prove to be a boy,” he
added whimsically. “Oh, but Billy, she _can’t_ turn out to be such a
dear treasure,” finished the man. And at the adoring look in his eyes
Billy blushed deeply--and promptly forgot all about Mary Jane and her
pink.



CHAPTER IV. FOR MARY JANE


“I have a letter here from Mary Jane, my dear,” announced Aunt Hannah at
the luncheon table one day.

“Have you?” Billy raised interested eyes from her own letters. “What
does she say?”

“She will be here Thursday. Her train is due at the South Station at
four-thirty. She seems to be very grateful to you for your offer to let
her come right here for a month; but she says she’s afraid you don’t
realize, perhaps, just what you are doing--to take her in like that,
with her singing, and all.”

“Nonsense! She doesn’t refuse, does she?”

“Oh, no; she doesn’t refuse--but she doesn’t accept either, exactly, as
I can see. I’ve read the letter over twice, too. I’ll let you judge for
yourself by and by, when you have time to read it.”

Billy laughed.

“Never mind. I don’t want to read it. She’s just a little shy about
coming, that’s all. She’ll stay all right, when we come to meet her.
What time did you say it was, Thursday?”

“Half past four, South Station.”

“Thursday, at half past four. Let me see--that’s the day of the
Carletons’ ‘At Home,’ isn’t it?”

“Oh, my grief and conscience, yes! But I had forgotten it. What shall we
do?”

“Oh, that will be easy. We’ll just go to the Carletons’ early and have
John wait, then take us from there to the South Station. Meanwhile we’ll
make sure that the little blue room is all ready for her. I put in my
white enamel work-basket yesterday, and that pretty little blue case for
hairpins and curling tongs that I bought at the fair. I want the room to
look homey to her, you know.”

“As if it could look any other way, if _you_ had anything to do with
it,” sighed Aunt Hannah, admiringly.

Billy laughed.

“If we get stranded we might ask the Henshaw boys to help us out, Aunt
Hannah. They’d probably suggest guns and swords. That’s the way they
fixed up _my_ room.”

Aunt Hannah raised shocked hands of protest.

“As if we would! Mercy, what a time that was!”

Billy laughed again.

“I never shall forget, _never_, my first glimpse of that room when Mrs.
Hartwell switched on the lights. Oh, Aunt Hannah, I wish you could have
seen it before they took out those guns and spiders!”

“As if I didn’t see quite enough when I saw William’s face that morning
he came for me!” retorted Aunt Hannah, spiritedly.

“Dear Uncle William! What an old saint he has been all the way through,”
 mused Billy aloud. “And Cyril--who would ever have believed that the
day would come when Cyril would say to me, as he did last night, that he
felt as if Marie had been gone a month. It’s been just seven days, you
know.”

“I know. She comes to-morrow, doesn’t she?”

“Yes, and I’m glad. I shall tell Marie she needn’t leave Cyril on _my_
hands again. Bertram says that at home Cyril hasn’t played a dirge since
his engagement; but I notice that up here--where Marie might be, but
isn’t--his tunes would never be mistaken for ragtime. By the way,” she
added, as she rose from the table, “that’s another surprise in store for
Hugh Calderwell. He always declared that Cyril wasn’t a marrying man,
either, any more than Bertram. You know he said Bertram only cared for
girls to paint; but--” She stopped and looked inquiringly at Rosa, who
had appeared at that moment in the hall doorway.

“It’s the telephone, Miss Neilson. Mr. Bertram Henshaw wants you.”

A few minutes later Aunt Hannah heard Billy at the piano. For fifteen,
twenty, thirty minutes the brilliant scales and arpeggios rippled
through the rooms and up the stairs to Aunt Hannah, who knew, by the
very sound of them, that some unusual nervousness was being worked off
at the finger tips that played them. At the end of forty-five minutes
Aunt Hannah went down-stairs.

“Billy, my dear, excuse me, but have you forgotten what time it is?
Weren’t you going out with Bertram?”

Billy stopped playing at once, but she did not turn her head. Her
fingers busied themselves with some music on the piano.

“We aren’t going, Aunt Hannah,” she said.

“Bertram can’t.”

“_Can’t!_”

“Well, he didn’t want to--so of course I said not to. He’s been painting
this morning on a new portrait, and she said he might stay to luncheon
and keep right on for a while this afternoon, if he liked. And--he did
like, so he stayed.”

“Why, how--how--” Aunt Hannah stopped helplessly.

“Oh, no, not at all,” interposed Billy, lightly. “He told me all about
it the other night. It’s going to be a very wonderful portrait; and,
of course, I wouldn’t want to interfere with--his work!” And again a
brilliant scale rippled from Billy’s fingers after a crashing chord in
the bass.

Slowly Aunt Hannah turned and went up-stairs. Her eyes were troubled.
Not since Billy’s engagement had she heard Billy play like that.

Bertram did not find a pensive Billy awaiting him that evening. He
found a bright-eyed, flushed-cheeked Billy, who let herself be
kissed--once--but who did not kiss back; a blithe, elusive Billy, who
played tripping little melodies, and sang jolly little songs, instead
of sitting before the fire and talking; a Billy who at last turned, and
asked tranquilly:

“Well, how did the picture go?”

Bertram rose then, crossed the room, and took Billy very gently into his
arms.

“Sweetheart, you were a dear this noon to let me off like that,” he
began in a voice shaken with emotion. “You don’t know, perhaps, exactly
what you did. You see, I was nearly wild between wanting to be with you,
and wanting to go on with my work. And I was just at that point
where one little word from you, one hint that you wanted me to come
anyway--and I should have come. But you didn’t say it, nor hint it. Like
the brave little bit of inspiration that you are, you bade me stay and
go on with my work.”

The “inspiration’s” head drooped a little lower, but this only brought
a wealth of soft bronze hair to just where Bertram could lay his cheek
against it--and Bertram promptly took advantage of his opportunity. “And
so I stayed, Billy, and I did good work; I know I did good work. Why,
Billy,”--Bertram stepped back now, and held Billy by the shoulders at
arms’ length--“Billy, that’s going to be the best work I’ve ever done. I
can see it coming even now, under my fingers.”

Billy lifted her head and looked into her lover’s face. His eyes were
glowing. His cheeks were flushed. His whole countenance was aflame with
the soul of the artist who sees his vision taking shape before him. And
Billy, looking at him, felt suddenly--ashamed.

“Oh, Bertram, I’m proud, proud, _proud_ of you!” she breathed. “Come,
let’s go over to the fire-and talk!”



CHAPTER V. MARIE SPEAKS HER MIND


Billy with John and Peggy met Marie Hawthorn at the station. “Peggy”
 was short for “Pegasus,” and was what Billy always called her luxurious,
seven-seated touring car.

“I simply won’t call it ‘automobile,’” she had declared when she bought
it. “In the first place, it takes too long to say it, and in the second
place, I don’t want to add one more to the nineteen different ways to
pronounce it that I hear all around me every day now. As for calling it
my ‘car,’ or my ‘motor car’--I should expect to see a Pullman or one
of those huge black trucks before my door, if I ordered it by either of
those names. Neither will I insult the beautiful thing by calling it a
‘machine.’ Its name is Pegasus. I shall call it ‘Peggy.’”

And “Peggy” she called it. John sniffed his disdain, and Billy’s friends
made no secret of their amused tolerance; but, in an astonishingly short
time, half the automobile owners of her acquaintance were calling their
own cars “Peggy”; and even the dignified John himself was heard to order
“some gasoline for Peggy,” quite as a matter of course.

When Marie Hawthorn stepped from the train at the North Station she
greeted Billy with affectionate warmth, though at once her blue eyes
swept the space beyond expectantly and eagerly.

Billy’s lips curved in a mischievous smile.

“No, he didn’t come,” she said. “He didn’t want to--a little bit.”

Marie grew actually pale.

“Didn’t _want_ to!” she stammered.

Billy gave her a spasmodic hug.

“Goosey! No, he didn’t--a _little_ bit; but he did a great _big_ bit.
As if you didn’t know he was dying to come, Marie! But he simply
couldn’t--something about his concert Monday night. He told me over the
telephone; but between his joy that you were coming, and his rage that
he couldn’t see you the first minute you did come, I couldn’t quite make
out what was the trouble. But he’s coming to dinner to-night, so he’ll
doubtless tell you all about it.”

Marie sighed her relief.

“Oh, that’s all right then. I was afraid he was sick--when I didn’t see
him.”

Billy laughed softly.

“No, he isn’t sick, Marie; but you needn’t go away again before the
wedding--not to leave him on my hands. I wouldn’t have believed Cyril
Henshaw, confirmed old bachelor and avowed woman-hater, could have acted
the part of a love-sick boy as he has the last week or two.”

The rose-flush on Marie’s cheek spread to the roots of her fine yellow
hair.

“Billy, dear, he--he didn’t!”

“Marie, dear--he--he did!”

Marie laughed. She did not say anything, but the rose-flush deepened
as she occupied herself very busily in getting her trunk-check from the
little hand bag she carried.

Cyril was not mentioned again until the two girls, veils tied and coats
buttoned, were snugly ensconced in the tonneau, and Peggy’s nose was
turned toward home. Then Billy asked:

“Have you settled on where you’re going to live?”

“Not quite. We’re going to talk of that to-night; but we _do_ know that
we aren’t going to live at the Strata.”

“Marie!”

Marie stirred uneasily at the obvious disappointment and reproach in her
friend’s voice.

“But, dear, it wouldn’t be wise, I’m sure,” she argued hastily. “There
will be you and Bertram--”

“We sha’n’t be there for a year, nearly,” cut in Billy, with swift
promptness. “Besides, I think it would be lovely--all together.”

Marie smiled, but she shook her head.

“Lovely--but not practical, dear.”

Billy laughed ruefully.

“I know; you’re worrying about those puddings of yours. You’re afraid
somebody is going to interfere with your making quite so many as you
want to; and Cyril is worrying for fear there’ll be somebody else in the
circle of his shaded lamp besides his little Marie with the light on her
hair, and the mending basket by her side.”

“Billy, what are you talking about?”

Billy threw a roguish glance into her friend’s amazed blue eyes.

“Oh, just a little picture Cyril drew once for me of what home meant for
him: a room with a table and a shaded lamp, and a little woman beside it
with the light on her hair and a great basket of sewing by her side.”

Marie’s eyes softened.

“Did he say--that?”

“Yes. Oh, he declared he shouldn’t want her to sit under that lamp all
the time, of course; but he hoped she’d like that sort of thing.”

Marie threw a quick glance at the stolid back of John beyond the two
empty seats in front of them. Although she knew he could not hear her
words, instinctively she lowered her voice.

“Did you know--then--about--me?” she asked, with heightened color.

“No, only that there was a girl somewhere who, he hoped, would sit under
the lamp some day. And when I asked him if the girl did like that sort
of thing, he said yes, he thought so; for she had told him once that
the things she liked best of all to do were to mend stockings and make
puddings. Then I knew, of course, ‘twas you, for I’d heard you say the
same thing. So I sent him right along out to you in the summer-house.”

The pink flush on Marie’s face grew to a red one. Her blue eyes turned
again to John’s broad back, then drifted to the long, imposing line of
windowed walls and doorways on the right. The automobile was passing
smoothly along Beacon Street now with the Public Garden just behind them
on the left. After a moment Marie turned to Billy again.

“I’m so glad he wants--just puddings and stockings,” she began a little
breathlessly. “You see, for so long I supposed he _wouldn’t_ want
anything but a very brilliant, talented wife who could play and sing
beautifully; a wife he’d be proud of--like you.”

“Me? Nonsense!” laughed Billy. “Cyril never wanted me, and I never
wanted him--only once for a few minutes, so to speak, when I thought,
I did. In spite of our music, we aren’t a mite congenial. I like people
around; he doesn’t. I like to go to plays; he doesn’t. He likes rainy
days, and I abhor them. Mercy! Life with me for him would be one long
jangling discord, my love, while with you it’ll be one long sweet song!”

Marie drew a deep breath. Her eyes were fixed on a point far ahead up
the curveless street.

“I hope it will, indeed!” she breathed.

Not until they were almost home did Billy say suddenly:

“Oh, did Cyril write you? A young relative of Aunt Hannah’s is coming
to-morrow to stay a while at the house.”

“Er--yes, Cyril told me,” admitted Marie.

Billy smiled.

“Didn’t like it, I suppose; eh?” she queried shrewdly.

“N-no, I’m afraid he didn’t--very well. He said she’d be--one more to be
around.”

“There, what did I tell you?” dimpled Billy. “You can see what you’re
coming to when you do get that shaded lamp and the mending basket!”

A moment later, coming in sight of the house, Billy saw a tall,
smooth-shaven man standing on the porch. The man lifted his hat and
waved it gayly, baring a slightly bald head to the sun.

“It’s Uncle William--bless his heart!” cried Billy. “They’re all coming
to dinner, then he and Aunt Hannah and Bertram and I are going down to
the Hollis Street Theatre and let you and Cyril have a taste of what
that shaded lamp is going to be. I hope you won’t be lonesome,” she
finished mischievously, as the car drew up before the door.



CHAPTER VI. AT THE SIGN OF THE PINK


After a week of beautiful autumn weather, Thursday dawned raw and cold.
By noon an east wind had made the temperature still more uncomfortable.

At two o’clock Aunt Hannah tapped at Billy’s chamber door. She showed a
troubled face to the girl who answered her knock.

“Billy, _would_ you mind very much if I asked you to go alone to the
Carletons’ and to meet Mary Jane?” she inquired anxiously.

“Why, no--that is, of course I should _mind_, dear, because I always
like to have you go to places with me. But it isn’t necessary. You
aren’t sick; are you?”

“N-no, not exactly; but I have been sneezing all the morning, and taking
camphor and sugar to break it up--if it is a cold. But it is so raw and
Novemberish out, that--”

“Why, of course you sha’n’t go, you poor dear! Mercy! don’t get one
of those dreadful colds on to you before the wedding! Have you felt
a draft? Where’s another shawl?” Billy turned and cast searching eyes
about the room--Billy always kept shawls everywhere for Aunt Hannah’s
shoulders and feet. Bertram had been known to say, indeed, that a room,
according to Aunt Hannah, was not fully furnished unless it contained
from one to four shawls, assorted as to size and warmth. Shawls,
certainly, did seem to be a necessity with Aunt Hannah, as she usually
wore from one to three at the same time--which again caused Bertram to
declare that he always counted Aunt Hannah’s shawls when he wished to
know what the thermometer was.

“No, I’m not cold, and I haven’t felt a draft,” said Aunt Hannah now. “I
put on my thickest gray shawl this morning with the little pink one for
down-stairs, and the blue one for breakfast; so you see I’ve been very
careful. But I _have_ sneezed six times, so I think ‘twould be safer not
to go out in this east wind. You were going to stop for Mrs. Granger,
anyway, weren’t you? So you’ll have her with you for the tea.”

“Yes, dear, don’t worry. I’ll take your cards and explain to Mrs.
Carleton and her daughters.”

“And, of course, as far as Mary Jane is concerned, I don’t know her any
more than you do; so I couldn’t be any help there,” sighed Aunt Hannah.

“Not a bit,” smiled Billy, cheerily. “Don’t give it another thought, my
dear. I sha’n’t have a bit of trouble. All I’ll have to do is to look
for a girl alone with a pink. Of course I’ll have mine on, too, and
she’ll be watching for me. So just run along and take your nap, dear,
and be all rested and ready to welcome her when she comes,” finished
Billy, stooping to give the soft, faintly pink cheek a warm kiss.

“Well, thank you, my dear; perhaps I will,” sighed Aunt Hannah, drawing
the gray shawl about her as she turned away contentedly.

Mrs. Carleton’s tea that afternoon was, for Billy, not an occasion of
unalloyed joy. It was the first time she had appeared at a gathering of
any size since the announcement of her engagement; and, as she dolefully
told Bertram afterwards, she had very much the feeling of the picture
hung on the wall.

“And they _did_ put up their lorgnettes and say, ‘Is _that_ the one?’”
 she declared; “and I know some of them finished with ‘Did you ever?’
too,” she sighed.

But Billy did not stay long in Mrs. Carleton’s softly-lighted,
flower-perfumed rooms. At ten minutes past four she was saying good-by
to a group of friends who were vainly urging her to remain longer.

“I can’t--I really can’t,” she declared. “I’m due at the South Station
at half past four to meet a Miss Arkwright, a young cousin of Aunt
Hannah’s, whom I’ve never seen before. We’re to meet at the sign of
the pink,” she explained smilingly, just touching the single flower she
wore.

Her hostess gave a sudden laugh.

“Let me see, my dear; if I remember rightly, you’ve had experience
before, meeting at this sign of the pink. At least, I have a very vivid
recollection of Mr. William Henshaw’s going once to meet a _boy_ with
a pink, who turned out to be a girl. Now, to even things up, your girl
should turn out to be a boy!”

Billy smiled and reddened.

“Perhaps--but I don’t think to-day will strike the balance,” she
retorted, backing toward the door. “This young lady’s name is ‘Mary
Jane’; and I’ll leave it to you to find anything very masculine in
that!”

It was a short drive from Mrs. Carleton’s Commonwealth Avenue home to
the South Station, and Peggy made as quick work of it as the narrow,
congested cross streets would allow. In ample time Billy found herself
in the great waiting-room, with John saying respectfully in her ear:

“The man says the train comes in on Track Fourteen, Miss, an’ it’s on
time.”

At twenty-nine minutes past four Billy left her seat and walked down the
train-shed platform to Track Number Fourteen. She had pinned the pink
now to the outside of her long coat, and it made an attractive dash
of white against the dark-blue velvet. Billy was looking particularly
lovely to-day. Framing her face was the big dark-blue velvet picture hat
with its becoming white plumes.

During the brief minutes’ wait before the clanging locomotive puffed
into view far down the long track, Billy’s thoughts involuntarily went
back to that other watcher beside a train gate not quite five years
before.

“Dear Uncle William!” she murmured tenderly. Then suddenly she
laughed--so nearly aloud that a man behind her gave her a covert glance
from curious eyes. “My! but what a jolt I must have been to Uncle
William!” Billy was thinking.

The next minute she drew nearer the gate and regarded with absorbed
attention the long line of passengers already sweeping up the narrow
aisle between the cars.

Hurrying men came first, with long strides, and eyes that looked
straight ahead. These Billy let pass with a mere glance. The next group
showed a sprinkling of women--women whose trig hats and linen collars
spelled promptness as well as certainty of aim and accomplishment. To
these, also, Billy paid scant attention. Couples came next--the men
anxious-eyed, and usually walking two steps ahead of their companions;
the women plainly flustered and hurried, and invariably buttoning gloves
or gathering up trailing ends of scarfs or boas.

The crowd was thickening fast, now, and Billy’s eyes were alert.
Children were appearing, and young women walking alone. One of these
wore a bunch of violets. Billy gave her a second glance. Then she saw a
pink--but it was on the coat lapel of a tall young fellow with a brown
beard; so with a slight frown she looked beyond down the line.

Old men came now, and old women; fleshy women, and women with small
children and babies. Couples came, too--dawdling couples, plainly newly
married: the men were not two steps ahead, and the women’s gloves were
buttoned and their furs in place.

Gradually the line thinned, and soon there were left only an old man
with a cane, and a young woman with three children. Yet nowhere had
Billy seen a girl wearing a white carnation, and walking alone.

With a deeper frown on her face Billy turned and looked about her. She
thought that somewhere in the crowd she had missed Mary Jane, and that
she would find her now, standing near. But there was no one standing
near except the good-looking young fellow with the little pointed
brown beard, who, as Billy noticed a second time, was wearing a white
carnation.

As she glanced toward him, their eyes met. Then, to Billy’s unbounded
amazement, the man advanced with uplifted hat.

“I beg your pardon, but is not this--Miss Neilson?”

Billy drew back with just a touch of hauteur.

“Y-yes,” she murmured.

“I thought so--yet I was expecting to see you with Aunt Hannah. I am M.
J. Arkwright, Miss Neilson.”

For a brief instant Billy stared dazedly.

“You don’t mean--Mary Jane?” she gasped.

“I’m afraid I do.” His lips twitched.

“But I thought--we were expecting--” She stopped helplessly. For one
more brief instant she stared; then, suddenly, a swift change came to
her face. Her eyes danced.

“Oh--oh!” she chuckled. “How perfectly funny! You _have_ evened things
up, after all. To think that Mary Jane should be a--” She paused and
flashed almost angrily suspicious eyes into his face. “But mine _was_
‘Billy,’” she cried. “Your name isn’t really--Mary Jane’?”

“I am often called that.” His brown eyes twinkled, but they did not
swerve from their direct gaze into her own.

“But--” Billy hesitated, and turned her eyes away. She saw then that
many curious glances were already being flung in her direction. The
color in her cheeks deepened. With an odd little gesture she seemed to
toss something aside. “Never mind,” she laughed a little hysterically.
“If you’ll pick up your bag, please, Mr. Mary Jane, and come with me.
John and Peggy are waiting. Or--I forgot--you have a trunk, of course?”

The man raised a protesting hand.

“Thank you; but, Miss Neilson, really--I couldn’t think of trespassing
on your hospitality--now, you know.”

“But we--we invited you,” stammered Billy.

He shook his head.

“You invited _Miss_ Mary Jane.”

Billy bubbled into low laughter.

“I beg your pardon, but it _is_ funny,” she sighed. “You see _I_ came
once just the same way, and now to have the tables turned like this!
What will Aunt Hannah say--what will everybody say? Come, I want them to
begin--to say it,” she chuckled irrepressibly.

“Thank you, but I shall go to a hotel, of course. Later, if you’ll be so
good as to let me call, and explain--!”

“But I’m afraid Aunt Hannah will think--” Billy stopped abruptly. Some
distance away she saw John coming toward them. She turned hurriedly to
the man at her side. Her eyes still danced, but her voice was mockingly
serious. “Really, Mr. Mary Jane, I’m afraid you’ll have to come to
dinner; then you can settle the rest with Aunt Hannah. John is almost
upon us--and _I_ don’t want to make explanations. Do you?”

“John,” she said airily to the somewhat dazed chauffeur (who had been
told he was to meet a young woman), “take Mr. Arkwright’s bag, please,
and show him where Peggy is waiting. It will be five minutes, perhaps,
before I can come--if you’ll kindly excuse me,” she added to Arkwright,
with a flashing glance from merry eyes. “I have some--telephoning to
do.”

All the way to the telephone booth Billy was trying to bring order out
of the chaos of her mind; but all the way, too, she was chuckling.

“To think that this thing should have happened to _me!_” she
said, almost aloud. “And here I am telephoning just like Uncle
William--Bertram said Uncle William _did_ telephone about _me!_”

In due course Billy had Aunt Hannah at the other end of the wire.

“Aunt Hannah, listen. I’d never have believed it, but it’s happened.
Mary Jane is--a man.”

Billy heard a dismayed gasp and a muttered “Oh, my grief and
conscience!” then a shaking “Wha-at?”

“I say, Mary Jane is a man.” Billy was enjoying herself hugely.

“A _ma-an!_”

“Yes; a great big man with a brown beard. He’s waiting now with John and
I must go.”

“But, Billy, I don’t understand,” chattered an agitated voice over the
line. “He--he called himself ‘Mary Jane.’ He hasn’t any business to be
a big man with a brown beard! What shall we do? We don’t want a big man
with a brown beard--here!”

Billy laughed roguishly.

“I don’t know. _You_ asked him! How he will like that little blue
room--Aunt Hannah!” Billy’s voice turned suddenly tragic. “For pity’s
sake take out those curling tongs and hairpins, and the work-basket.
I’d _never_ hear the last of it if he saw those, I know. He’s just that
kind!”

A half stifled groan came over the wire.

“Billy, he can’t stay here.”

Billy laughed again.

“No, no, dear; he won’t, I know. He says he’s going to a hotel. But
I had to bring him home to dinner; there was no other way, under the
circumstances. He won’t stay. Don’t you worry. But good-by. I must
go. _Remember those curling tongs!_” And the receiver clicked sharply
against the hook.

In the automobile some minutes later, Billy and Mr. M. J. Arkwright
were speeding toward Corey Hill. It was during a slight pause in the
conversation that Billy turned to her companion with a demure:

“I telephoned Aunt Hannah, Mr. Arkwright. I thought she ought to
be--warned.”

“You are very kind. What did she say?--if I may ask.”

There was a brief moment of hesitation before Billy answered.

“She said you called yourself ‘Mary Jane,’ and that you hadn’t any
business to be a big man with a brown beard.”

Arkwright laughed.

“I’m afraid I owe Aunt Hannah an apology,” he said. He hesitated,
glanced admiringly at the glowing, half-averted face near him, then went
on decisively. He wore the air of a man who has set the match to his
bridges. “I signed both letters ‘M. J. Arkwright,’ but in the first one
I quoted a remark of a friend, and in that remark I was addressed as
‘Mary Jane.’ I did not know but Aunt Hannah knew of the nickname.”
 (Arkwright was speaking a little slowly now, as if weighing his words.)
“But when she answered, I saw that she did not; for, from something she
said, I realized that she thought I was a real Mary Jane. For the joke
of the thing I let it pass. But--if she noticed my letter carefully, she
saw that I did not accept your kind invitation to give ‘Mary Jane’ a
home.”

“Yes, we noticed that,” nodded Billy, merrily. “But we didn’t think you
meant it. You see we pictured you as a shy young thing. But, really,”
 she went on with a low laugh, “you see your coming as a masculine ‘Mary
Jane’ was particularly funny--for me; for, though perhaps you didn’t
know it, I came once to this very same city, wearing a pink, and was
expected to be Billy, a boy. And only to-day a lady warned me that
your coming might even things up. But I didn’t believe it would--a Mary
Jane!”

Arkwright laughed. Again he hesitated, and seemed to be weighing his
words.

“Yes, I heard about that coming of yours. I might almost say--that’s why
I--let the mistake pass in Aunt Hannah’s letter,” he said.

Billy turned with reproachful eyes.

“Oh, how could--you? But then--it was a temptation!” She laughed
suddenly. “What sinful joy you must have had watching me hunt for ‘Mary
Jane.’”

“I didn’t,” acknowledged the other, with unexpected candor. “I
felt--ashamed. And when I saw you were there alone without Aunt Hannah,
I came very near not speaking at all--until I realized that that would
be even worse, under the circumstances.”

“Of course it would,” smiled Billy, brightly; “so I don’t see but I
shall have to forgive you, after all. And here we are at home, Mr. Mary
Jane. By the way, what did you say that ‘M. J.’ did stand for?” she
asked, as the car came to a stop.

The man did not seem to hear; at least he did not answer. He was
helping his hostess to alight. A moment later a plainly agitated Aunt
Hannah--her gray shawl topped with a huge black one--opened the door of
the house.



CHAPTER VII. OLD FRIENDS AND NEW


At ten minutes before six on the afternoon of Arkwright’s arrival, Billy
came into the living-room to welcome the three Henshaw brothers, who, as
was frequently the case, were dining at Hillside.

Bertram thought Billy had never looked prettier than she did this
afternoon with the bronze sheen of her pretty house gown bringing
out the bronze lights in her dark eyes and in the soft waves of her
beautiful hair. Her countenance, too, carried a peculiar something that
the artist’s eye was quick to detect, and that the artist’s fingers
tingled to put on canvas.

“Jove! Billy,” he said low in her ear, as he greeted her, “I wish I had
a brush in my hand this minute. I’d have a ‘Face of a Girl’ that would
be worth while!”

Billy laughed and dimpled her appreciation; but down in her heart she
was conscious of a vague unrest. Billy wished, sometimes, that she did
not so often seem to Bertram--a picture.

She turned to Cyril with outstretched hand.

“Oh, yes, Marie’s coming,” she smiled in answer to the quick shifting
of Cyril’s eyes to the hall doorway. “And Aunt Hannah, too. They’re
up-stairs.”

“And Mary Jane?” demanded William, a little anxiously

“Will’s getting nervous,” volunteered Bertram, airily. “He wants to see
Mary Jane. You see we’ve told him that we shall expect him to see that
she doesn’t bother us four too much, you know. He’s expected always to
remove her quietly but effectually, whenever he sees that she is likely
to interrupt a tête-á-tête. Naturally, then, Will wants to see
Mary Jane.”

Billy began to laugh hysterically. She dropped into a chair and raised
both her hands, palms outward.

“Don’t, don’t--please don’t!” she choked, “or I shall die. I’ve had all
I can stand, already.”

“All you can stand?”

“What do you mean?”

“Is she so--impossible?” This last was from Bertram, spoken softly, and
with a hurried glance toward the hall.

Billy dropped her hands and lifted her head. By heroic effort she pulled
her face into sobriety--all but her eyes--and announced:

“Mary Jane is--a man.”

“Wha-at?”

“A _man!_”

“Billy!”

Three masculine forms sat suddenly erect.

“Yes. Oh, Uncle William, I know now just how you felt--I know, I know,”
 gurgled Billy, incoherently. “There he stood with his pink just as I
did--only he had a brown beard, and he didn’t have Spunk--and I had to
telephone to prepare folks, just as you did. And the room--the room!
I fixed the room, too,” she babbled breathlessly, “only I had curling
tongs and hair pins in it instead of guns and spiders!”

“Child, child! what _are_ you talking about?” William’s face was red.

“A _man!_--_Mary Jane!_” Cyril was merely cross.

“Billy, what does this mean?” Bertram had grown a little white.

Billy began to laugh again, yet she was plainly trying to control
herself.

“I’ll tell you. I must tell you. Aunt Hannah is keeping him up-stairs
so I can tell you,” she panted. “But it was so funny, when I expected a
girl, you know, to see him with his brown beard, and he was so tall and
big! And, of course, it made me think how _I_ came, and was a girl when
you expected a boy; and Mrs. Carleton had just said to-day that maybe
this girl would even things up. Oh, it was so funny!”

“Billy, my-my dear,” remonstrated Uncle William, mildly.

“But what _is_ his name?” demanded Cyril.

“Did the creature sign himself ‘Mary Jane’?” exploded Bertram.

“I don’t know his name, except that it’s ‘M. J.’--and that’s how he
signed the letters. But he _is_ called ‘Mary Jane’ sometimes, and in the
letter he quoted somebody’s speech--I’ve forgotten just how--but in it
he was called ‘Mary Jane,’ and, of course, Aunt Hannah took him for a
girl,” explained Billy, grown a little more coherent now.

“Didn’t he write again?” asked William.

“Yes.”

“Well, why didn’t he correct the mistake, then?” demanded Bertram.

Billy chuckled.

“He didn’t want to, I guess. He thought it was too good a joke.”

“Joke!” scoffed Cyril.

“But, see here, Billy, he isn’t going to live here--now?” Bertram’s
voice was almost savage.

“Oh, no, he isn’t going to live here--now,” interposed smooth tones from
the doorway.

“Mr.--Arkwright!” breathed Billy, confusedly.

Three crimson-faced men sprang to their feet. The situation, for a
moment, threatened embarrassed misery for all concerned; but Arkwright,
with a cheery smile, advanced straight toward Bertram, and held out a
friendly hand.

“The proverbial fate of listeners,” he said easily; “but I don’t blame
you at all. No, ‘he’ isn’t going to live here,” he went on, grasping
each brother’s hand in turn, as Billy murmured faint introductions; “and
what is more, he hereby asks everybody’s pardon for the annoyance his
little joke has caused. He might add that he’s heartily-ashamed of
himself, as well; but if any of you--” Arkwright turned to the three
tall men still standing by their chairs--“if any of you had suffered
what he has at the hands of a swarm of youngsters for that name’s sake,
you wouldn’t blame him for being tempted to get what fun he could out of
Mary Jane--if there ever came a chance!”

Naturally, after this, there could be nothing stiff or embarrassing.
Billy laughed in relief, and motioned Mr. Arkwright to a seat near her.
William said “Of course, of course!” and shook hands again. Bertram and
Cyril laughed shamefacedly and sat down. Somebody said: “But what does
the ‘M. J.’ stand for, anyhow?” Nobody answered this, however; perhaps
because Aunt Hannah and Marie appeared just then in the doorway.

Dinner proved to be a lively meal. In the newcomer, Bertram met his
match for wit and satire; and “Mr. Mary Jane,” as he was promptly called
by every one but Aunt Hannah, was found to be a most entertaining guest.

After dinner somebody suggested music.

Cyril frowned, and got up abruptly. Still frowning, he turned to a
bookcase near him and began to take down and examine some of the books.

Bertram twinkled and glanced at Billy.

“Which is it, Cyril?” he called with cheerful impertinence; “stool,
piano, or audience that is the matter to-night?”

Only a shrug from Cyril answered.

“You see,” explained Bertram, jauntily, to Arkwright, whose eyes were
slightly puzzled, “Cyril never plays unless the piano and the pedals and
the weather and your ears and my watch and his fingers are just right!”

“Nonsense!” scorned Cyril, dropping his book and walking back to his
chair. “I don’t feel like playing to-night; that’s all.”

“You see,” nodded Bertram again.

“I see,” bowed Arkwright with quiet amusement.

“I believe--Mr. Mary Jane--sings,” observed Billy, at this point,
demurely.

“Why, yes, of course,” chimed in Aunt Hannah with some nervousness.
“That’s what she--I mean he--was coming to Boston for--to study music.”

Everybody laughed.

“Won’t you sing, please?” asked Billy. “Can you--without your notes? I
have lots of songs if you want them.”

For a moment--but only a moment--Arkwright hesitated; then he rose and
went to the piano.

With the easy sureness of the trained musician his fingers dropped to
the keys and slid into preliminary chords and arpeggios to test the
touch of the piano; then, with a sweetness and purity that made every
listener turn in amazed delight, a well-trained tenor began the “Thro’
the leaves the night winds moving,” of Schubert’s Serenade.

Cyril’s chin had lifted at the first tone. He was listening now with
very obvious pleasure. Bertram, too, was showing by his attitude the
keenest appreciation. William and Aunt Hannah, resting back in their
chairs, were contentedly nodding their approval to each other. Marie in
her corner was motionless with rapture. As to Billy--Billy was plainly
oblivious of everything but the song and the singer. She seemed scarcely
to move or to breathe till the song’s completion; then there came a low
“Oh, how beautiful!” through her parted lips.

Bertram, looking at her, was conscious of a vague irritation.

“Arkwright, you’re a lucky dog,” he declared almost crossly. “I wish I
could sing like that!”

“I wish I could paint a ‘Face of a Girl,’” smiled the tenor as he turned
from the piano.

“Oh, but, Mr. Arkwright, don’t stop,” objected Billy, springing to her
feet and going to her music cabinet by the piano. “There’s a little song
of Nevin’s I want you to sing. There, here it is. Just let me play it
for you.” And she slipped into the place the singer had just left.

It was the beginning of the end. After Nevin came De Koven, and after
De Koven, Gounod. Then came Nevin again, Billy still playing the
accompaniment. Next followed a duet. Billy did not consider herself much
of a singer, but her voice was sweet and true, and not without training.
It blended very prettily with the clear, pure tenor.

William and Aunt Hannah still smiled contentedly in their chairs, though
Aunt Hannah had reached for the pink shawl near her--the music had sent
little shivers down her spine. Cyril, with Marie, had slipped into the
little reception-room across the hall, ostensibly to look at some plans
for a house, although--as everybody knew--they were not intending to
build for a year.

Bertram, still sitting stiffly erect in his chair, was not conscious
of a vague irritation now. He was conscious of a very real, and a very
decided one--an irritation that was directed against himself, against
Billy, and against this man, Arkwright; but chiefly against music,
_per se_. He hated music. He wished he could sing. He wondered how long
it took to teach a man to sing, anyhow; and he wondered if a man could
sing--who never had sung.

At this point the duet came to an end, and Billy and her guest left
the piano. Almost at once, after this, Arkwright made his very graceful
adieus, and went off with his suit-case to the hotel where, as he had
informed Aunt Hannah, his room was already engaged.

William went home then, and Aunt Hannah went up-stairs. Cyril and Marie
withdrew into a still more secluded corner to look at their plans, and
Bertram found himself at last alone with Billy. He forgot, then, in
the blissful hour he spent with her before the open fire, how he hated
music; though he did say, just before he went home that night:

“Billy, how long does it take--to learn to sing?”

“Why, I don’t know, I’m sure,” replied Billy, abstractedly; then, with
sudden fervor: “Oh, Bertram, hasn’t Mr. Mary Jane a beautiful voice?”

Bertram wished then he had not asked the question; but all he said was:

“‘Mr. Mary Jane,’ indeed! What an absurd name!”

“But doesn’t he sing beautifully?”

“Eh? Oh, yes, he sings all right,” said Bertram’s tongue. Bertram’s
manner said: “Oh, yes, anybody can sing.”



CHAPTER VIII. M. J. OPENS THE GAME


On the morning after Cyril’s first concert of the season, Billy sat
sewing with Aunt Hannah in the little sitting-room at the end of the
hall upstairs. Aunt Hannah wore only one shawl this morning,--which
meant that she was feeling unusually well.

“Marie ought to be here to mend these stockings,” remarked Billy, as she
critically examined a tiny break in the black silk mesh stretched across
the darning-egg in her hand; “only she’d want a bigger hole. She does so
love to make a beautiful black latticework bridge across a yawning white
china sea--and you’d think the safety of an army depended on the way
each plank was laid, too,” she concluded.

Aunt Hannah smiled tranquilly, but she did not speak.

“I suppose you don’t happen to know if Cyril does wear big holes in his
socks,” resumed Billy, after a moment’s silence. “If you’ll believe it,
that thought popped into my head last night when Cyril was playing
that concerto so superbly. It did, actually--right in the middle of the
adagio movement, too. And in spite of my joy and pride in the music I
had all I could do to keep from nudging Marie right there and then and
asking her whether or not the dear man was hard on his hose.”

“Billy!” gasped the shocked Aunt Hannah; but the gasp broke at once into
what--in Aunt Hannah--passed for a chuckle. “If I remember rightly, when
I was there at the house with you at first, my dear, William told me
that Cyril wouldn’t wear any sock after it came to mending.”

“Horrors!” Billy waved her stocking in mock despair. “That will never
do in the world. It would break Marie’s heart. You know how she dotes on
darning.”

“Yes, I know,” smiled Aunt Hannah. “By the way, where is she this
morning?”

Billy raised her eyebrows quizzically.

“Gone to look at an apartment in Cambridge, I believe. Really,
Aunt Hannah, between her home-hunting in the morning, and her
furniture-and-rug hunting in the afternoon, and her poring over
house-plans in the evening, I can’t get her to attend to her clothes at
all. Never did I see a bride so utterly indifferent to her trousseau as
Marie Hawthorn--and her wedding less than a month away!”

“But she’s been shopping with you once or twice, since she came back,
hasn’t she? And she said it was for her trousseau.”

Billy laughed.

“Her trousseau! Oh, yes, it was. I’ll tell you what she got for her
trousseau that first day. We started out to buy two hats, some lace for
her wedding gown, some crêpe de Chine and net for a little dinner
frock, and some silk for a couple of waists to go with her tailored
suit; and what did we get? We purchased a new-style egg-beater and a
set of cake tins. Marie got into the kitchen department and I simply
couldn’t get her out of it. But the next day I was not to be inveigled
below stairs by any plaintive prayer for a nutmeg-grater or a soda
spoon. She _shopped_ that day, and to some purpose. We accomplished
lots.”

Aunt Hannah looked a little concerned.

“But she must have _some_ things started!”

“Oh, she has--‘most everything now. _I’ve_ seen to that. Of course her
outfit is very simple, anyway. Marie hasn’t much money, you know, and
she simply won’t let me do half what I want to. Still, she had saved
up some money, and I’ve finally convinced her that a trousseau doesn’t
consist of egg-beaters and cake tins, and that Cyril would want her to
look pretty. That name will fetch her every time, and I’ve learned to
use it beautifully. I think if I told her Cyril approved of short hair
and near-sightedness she’d I cut off her golden locks and don spectacles
on the spot.”

Aunt Hannah laughed softly.

“What a child you are, Billy! Besides, just as if Marie were the only
one in the house who is ruled by a magic name!”

The color deepened in Billy’s cheeks.

“Well, of course, any girl--cares something--for the man she loves. Just
as if I wouldn’t do anything in the world I could for Bertram!”

“Oh, that makes me think; who was that young woman Bertram was talking
with last evening--just after he left us, I mean?”

“Miss Winthrop--Miss Marguerite Winthrop. Bertram is--is painting her
portrait, you know.”

“Oh, is that the one?” murmured Aunt Hannah. “Hm-m; well, she has a
beautiful face.”

“Yes, she has.” Billy spoke very cheerfully. She even hummed a little
tune as she carefully selected a needle from the cushion in her basket.

“There’s a peculiar something in her face,” mused Aunt Hannah, aloud.

The little tune stopped abruptly, ending in a nervous laugh.

“Dear me! I wonder how it feels to have a peculiar something in your
face. Bertram, too, says she has it. He’s trying to ‘catch it,’ he says.
I wonder now--if he does catch it, does she lose it?” Flippant as were
the words, the voice that uttered them shook a little.

Aunt Hannah smiled indulgently--Aunt Hannah had heard only the
flippancy, not the shake.

“I don’t know, my dear. You might ask him this afternoon.”

Billy made a sudden movement. The china egg in her lap rolled to the
floor.

“Oh, but I don’t see him this afternoon,” she said lightly, as she
stooped to pick up the egg.

“Why, I’m sure he told me--” Aunt Hannah’s sentence ended in a
questioning pause.

“Yes, I know,” nodded Billy, brightly; “but he’s told me something
since. He isn’t going. He telephoned me this morning. Miss Winthrop
wanted the sitting changed from to-morrow to this afternoon. He said he
knew I’d understand.”

“Why, yes; but--” Aunt Hannah did not finish her sentence. The whir of
an electric bell had sounded through the house. A few moments later Rosa
appeared in the open doorway.

“It’s Mr. Arkwright, Miss. He said as how he had brought the music,”
 she announced.

“Tell him I’ll be down at once,” directed the mistress of Hillside.

As the maid disappeared, Billy put aside her work and sprang lightly to
her feet.

“Now wasn’t that nice of him? We were talking last night about some
duets he had, and he said he’d bring them over. I didn’t know he’d come
so soon, though.”

Billy had almost reached the bottom of the stairway, when a low,
familiar strain of music drifted out from the living-room. Billy caught
her breath, and held her foot suspended. The next moment the familiar
strain of music had become a lullaby--one of Billy’s own--and sung now
by a melting tenor voice that lingered caressingly and understandingly
on every tender cadence.

Motionless and almost breathless, Billy waited until the last
low “lul-la-by” vibrated into silence; then with shining eyes and
outstretched hands she entered the living-room.

“Oh, that was--beautiful,” she breathed.

Arkwright was on his feet instantly. His eyes, too, were alight.

“I could not resist singing it just once--here,” he said a little
unsteadily, as their hands met.

“But to hear my little song sung like that! I couldn’t believe it was
mine,” choked Billy, still plainly very much moved. “You sang it as I’ve
never heard it sung before.”

Arkwright shook his head slowly.

“The inspiration of the room--that is all,”, he said. “It is a beautiful
song. All of your songs are beautiful.”

Billy blushed rosily.

“Thank you. You know--more of them, then?”

“I think I know them all--unless you have some new ones out. Have you
some new ones, lately?”

Billy shook her head.

“No; I haven’t written anything since last spring.”

“But you’re going to?”

She drew a long sigh.

“Yes, oh, yes. I know that _now_--” With a swift biting of her lower
lip Billy caught herself up in time. As if she could tell this man, this
stranger, what she had told Bertram that night by the fire--that she
knew that now, _now_ she would write beautiful songs, with his love, and
his pride in her, as incentives. “Oh, yes, I think I shall write more
one of these days,” she finished lightly. “But come, this isn’t singing
duets! I want to see the music you brought.”

They sang then, one after another of the duets. To Billy, the music was
new and interesting. To Billy, too, it was new (and interesting) to hear
her own voice blending with another’s so perfectly--to feel herself a
part of such exquisite harmony.

“Oh, oh!” she breathed ecstatically, after the last note of a
particularly beautiful phrase. “I never knew before how lovely it was to
sing duets.”

“Nor I,” replied Arkwright in a voice that was not quite steady.

Arkwright’s eyes were on the enraptured face of the girl so near him.
It was well, perhaps, that Billy did not happen to turn and catch their
expression. Still, it might have been better if she had turned, after
all. But Billy’s eyes were on the music before her. Her fingers were
busy with the fluttering pages, searching for another duet.

“Didn’t you?” she murmured abstractedly. “I supposed _you’d_ sung them
before; but you see I never did--until the other night. There, let’s try
this one!”

“This one” was followed by another and another. Then Billy drew a long
breath.

“There! that must positively be the last,” she declared reluctantly.
“I’m so hoarse now I can scarcely croak. You see, I don’t pretend to
sing, really.”

“Don’t you? You sing far better than some who do, anyhow,” retorted the
man, warmly.

“Thank you,” smiled Billy; “that was nice of you to say so--for my
sake--and the others aren’t here to care. But tell me of yourself. I
haven’t had a chance to ask you yet; and--I think you said Mary Jane was
going to study for Grand Opera.”

Arkwright laughed and shrugged his shoulders.

“She is; but, as I told Calderwell, she’s quite likely to bring up in
vaudeville.”

“Calderwell! Do you mean--Hugh Calderwell?” Billy’s cheeks showed a
deeper color.

The man gave an embarrassed little laugh. He had not meant to let that
name slip out just yet.

“Yes.” He hesitated, then plunged on recklessly. “We tramped half over
Europe together last summer.”

“Did you?” Billy left her seat at the piano for one nearer the fire.
“But this isn’t telling me about your own plans,” she hurried on a
little precipitately. “You’ve studied before, of course. Your voice
shows that.”

“Oh, yes; I’ve studied singing several years, and I’ve had a year or two
of church work, besides a little concert practice of a mild sort.”

“Have you begun here, yet?”

“Y-yes, I’ve had my voice tried.”

Billy sat erect with eager interest.

“They liked it, of course?”

Arkwright laughed.

“I’m not saying that.”

“No, but I am,” declared Billy, with conviction. “They couldn’t help
liking it.”

Arkwright laughed again. Just how well they had “liked it” he did not
intend to say. Their remarks had been quite too flattering to repeat
even to this very plainly interested young woman--delightful and
heart-warming as was this same show of interest, to himself.

“Thank you,” was all he said.

Billy gave an excited little bounce in her chair.

“And you’ll begin to learn rôles right away?”

“I already have, some--after a fashion--before I came here.”

“Really? How splendid! Why, then you’ll be acting them next right on the
Boston Opera House stage, and we’ll all go to hear you. How perfectly
lovely! I can hardly wait.”

Arkwright laughed--but his eyes glowed with pleasure.

“Aren’t you hurrying things a little?” he ventured.

“But they do let the students appear,” argued Billy. “I knew a girl last
year who went on in ‘Aida,’ and she was a pupil at the School. She sang
first in a Sunday concert, then they put her in the bill for a Saturday
night. She did splendidly--so well that they gave her a chance later at
a subscription performance. Oh, you’ll be there--and soon, too!”

“Thank you! I only wish the powers that could put me there had your
flattering enthusiasm on the matter,” he smiled.

“I don’t worry any,” nodded Billy, “only please don’t ‘arrive’ too
soon--not before the wedding, you know,” she added jokingly. “We shall
be too busy to give you proper attention until after that.”

A peculiar look crossed Arkwright’s face.

“The--_wedding?_” he asked, a little faintly.

“Yes. Didn’t you know? My friend, Miss Hawthorn, is to marry Mr. Cyril
Henshaw next month.”

The man opposite relaxed visibly.

“Oh, _Miss Hawthorn!_ No, I didn’t know,” he murmured; then, with sudden
astonishment he added: “And to Mr. Cyril, the musician, did you say?”

“Yes. You seem surprised.”

“I am.” Arkwright paused, then went on almost defiantly. “You see,
Calderwell was telling me only last September how very unmarriageable
all the Henshaw brothers were. So I am surprised--naturally,” finished
Arkwright, as he rose to take his leave.

A swift crimson stained Billy’s face.

“But surely you must know that--that--”

“That he has a right to change his mind, of course,” supplemented
Arkwright smilingly, coming to her rescue in the evident confusion
that would not let her finish her sentence. “But Calderwell made it so
emphatic, you see, about all the brothers. He said that William had lost
his heart long ago; that Cyril hadn’t any to lose; and that Bertram--”

“But, Mr. Arkwright, Bertram is--is--” Billy had moistened her lips, and
plunged hurriedly in to prevent Arkwright’s next words. But again was
she unable to finish her sentence, and again was she forced to listen
to a very different completion from the smiling lips of the man at her
side.

“Is an artist, of course,” said Arkwright. “That’s what Calderwell
declared--that it would always be the tilt of a chin or the curve of a
cheek that the artist loved--to paint.”

Billy drew back suddenly. Her face paled. As if _now_ she could tell
this man that Bertram Henshaw was engaged to her! He would find it out
soon, of course, for himself; and perhaps he, like Hugh Calderwell,
would think it was the curve of _her_ cheek, or the tilt of _her_ chin--

Billy lifted her chin very defiantly now as she held out her hand in
good-by.



CHAPTER IX. A RUG, A PICTURE, AND A GIRL AFRAID


Thanksgiving came. Once again the Henshaw brothers invited Billy and
Aunt Hannah to spend the day with them. This time, however, there was to
be an additional guest present in the person of Marie Hawthorn.

And what a day it was, for everything and everybody concerned! First
the Strata itself: from Dong Ling’s kitchen in the basement to Cyril’s
domain on the top floor, the house was as spick-and-span as Pete’s eager
old hands could make it. In the drawing-room and in Bertram’s den and
studio, great clusters of pink roses perfumed the air, and brightened
the sombre richness of the old-time furnishings. Before the open fire in
the den a sleek gray cat--adorned with a huge ribbon bow the exact shade
of the roses (Bertram had seen to that!)--winked and blinked sleepy
yellow eyes. In Bertram’s studio the latest “Face of a Girl” had made
way for a group of canvases and plaques, every one of which showed Billy
Neilson in one pose or another. Up-stairs, where William’s chaos of
treasures filled shelves and cabinets, the place of honor was given to
a small black velvet square on which rested a pair of quaint Battersea
enamel mirror knobs. In Cyril’s rooms--usually so austerely bare--a
handsome Oriental rug and several curtain-draped chairs hinted at
purchases made at the instigation of a taste other than his own.

When the doorbell rang Pete admitted the ladies with a promptness that
was suggestive of surreptitious watching at some window. On Pete’s
face the dignity of his high office and the delight of the moment were
fighting for mastery. The dignity held firmly through Mrs. Stetson’s
friendly greeting; but it fled in defeat when Billy Neilson stepped over
the threshold with a cheery “Good morning, Pete.”

“Laws! But it’s good to be seein’ you here again,” stammered the
man,--delight now in sole possession.

“She’ll be coming to stay, one of these days, Pete,” smiled the eldest
Henshaw, hurrying forward.

“I wish she had now,” whispered Bertram, who, in spite of William’s
quick stride, had reached Billy’s side first.

From the stairway came the patter of a man’s slippered feet.

“The rug has come, and the curtains, too,” called a “householder” sort
of voice that few would have recognized as belonging to Cyril Henshaw.
“You must all come up-stairs and see them after dinner.” The voice,
apparently, spoke to everybody; but the eyes of the owner of the voice
plainly saw only the fair-haired young woman who stood a little in the
shadow behind Billy, and who was looking about her now as at something a
little fearsome, but very dear.

“You know--I’ve never been--where you live--before,” explained Marie
Hawthorn in a low, vibrant tone, when Cyril bent over her to take the
furs from her shoulders.

In Bertram’s den a little later, as hosts and guests advanced toward
the fire, the sleek gray cat rose, stretched lazily, and turned her head
with majestic condescension.

“Well, Spunkie, come here,” commanded Billy, snapping her fingers at
the slow-moving creature on the hearthrug. “Spunkie, when I am your
mistress, you’ll have to change either your name or your nature. As if
I were going to have such a bunch of independent moderation as you
masquerading as an understudy to my frisky little Spunk!”

Everybody laughed. William regarded his namesake with fond eyes as he
said:

“Spunkie doesn’t seem to be worrying.” The cat had jumped into Billy’s
lap with a matter-of-course air that was unmistakable--and to Bertram,
adorable. Bertram’s eyes, as they rested on Billy, were even fonder than
were his brother’s.

“I don’t think any one is--_worrying_,” he said with quiet emphasis.

Billy smiled.

“I should think they might be,” she answered. “Only think how dreadfully
upsetting I was in the first place!”

William’s beaming face grew a little stern.

“Nobody knew it but Kate--and she didn’t _know_ it; she only imagined
it,” he said tersely.

Billy shook her head.

“I’m not so sure,” she demurred. “As I look back at it now, I think I
can discern a few evidences myself--that I was upsetting. I was a bother
to Bertram in his painting, I am sure.”

“You were an inspiration,” corrected Bertram. “Think of the posing you
did for me.”

A swift something like a shadow crossed Billy’s face; but before her
lover could question its meaning, it was gone.

“And I know I was a torment to Cyril.” Billy had turned to the musician
now.

“Well, I admit you were a little--upsetting, at times,” retorted that
individual, with something of his old imperturbable rudeness.

“Nonsense!” cut in William, sharply. “You were never anything but a
comfort in the house, Billy, my dear--and you never will be.”

“Thank you,” murmured Billy, demurely. “I’ll remember that--when Pete
and I disagree about the table decorations, and Dong Ling doesn’t like
the way I want my soup seasoned.”

An anxious frown showed on Bertram’s face.

“Billy,” he said in a low voice, as the others laughed at her sally,
“you needn’t have Pete nor Dong Ling here if you don’t want them.”

“Don’t want them!” echoed Billy, indignantly. “Of course I want them!”

“But--Pete _is_ old, and--”

“Yes; and where’s he grown old? For whom has he worked the last fifty
years, while he’s been growing old? I wonder if you think I’d let Pete
leave this house as long as he _wants_ to stay! As for Dong Ling--”

A sudden movement of Bertram’s hand arrested her words. She looked up to
find Pete in the doorway.

“Dinner is served, sir,” announced the old butler, his eyes on his
master’s face.

William rose with alacrity, and gave his arm to Aunt Hannah.

“Well, I’m sure we’re ready for dinner,” he declared.

It was a good dinner, and it was well served. It could scarcely have
been otherwise with Dong Ling in the kitchen and Pete in the dining-room
doing their utmost to please. But even had the turkey been tough instead
of tender, and even had the pies been filled with sawdust instead of
with delicious mincemeat, it is doubtful if four at the table would have
known the difference: Cyril and Marie at one end were discussing where
to put their new sideboard in their dining-room, and Bertram and Billy
at the other were talking of the next Thanksgiving, when, according to
Bertram, the Strata would have the “dearest little mistress that ever
was born.” As if, under these circumstances, the tenderness of the
turkey or the toothsomeness of the mince pie mattered! To Aunt Hannah
and William, in the centre of the table, however, it did matter; so it
was well, of course, that the dinner was a good one.

“And now,” said Cyril, when dinner was over, “suppose you come up and
see the rug.”

In compliance with this suggestion, the six trailed up the long flights
of stairs then, Billy carrying an extra shawl for Aunt Hannah--Cyril’s
rooms were always cool.

“Oh, yes, I knew we should need it,” she nodded to Bertram, as she
picked up the shawl from the hall stand where she had left it when she
came in. “That’s why I brought it.”

“Oh, my grief and conscience, Cyril, how _can_ you stand it?--to climb
stairs like this,” panted Aunt Hannah, as she reached the top of the
last flight and dropped breathlessly into the nearest chair--from which
Marie had rescued a curtain just in time.

“Well, I’m not sure I could--if I were always to eat a Thanksgiving
dinner just before,” laughed Cyril. “Maybe I ought to have waited and
let you rest an hour or two.”

“But ‘twould have been too dark, then, to see the rug,” objected Marie.
“It’s a genuine Persian--a Kirman, you know; and I’m so proud of it,”
 she added, turning to the others. “I wanted you to see the colors by
daylight. Cyril likes it better, anyhow, in the daytime.”

“Fancy Cyril _liking_ any sort of a rug at any time,” chuckled Bertram,
his eyes on the rich, softly blended colors of the rug before him.
“Honestly, Miss Marie,” he added, turning to the little bride elect,
“how did you ever manage to get him to buy _any_ rug? He won’t have so
much as a ravelling on the floor up here to walk on.”

A startled dismay came into Marie’s blue eyes.

“Why, I thought he wanted rugs,” she faltered. “I’m sure he said--”

“Of course I want rugs,” interrupted Cyril, irritably. “I want them
everywhere except in my own especial den. You don’t suppose I want to
hear other people clattering over bare floors all day, do you?”

“Of course not!” Bertram’s face was preternaturally grave as he turned
to the little music teacher. “I hope, Miss Marie, that you wear rubber
heels on your shoes,” he observed solicitously.

Even Cyril laughed at this, though all he said was:

“Come, come, I got you up here to look at the rug.”

Bertram, however, was not to be silenced.

“And another thing, Miss Marie,” he resumed, with the air of a true and
tried adviser. “Just let me give you a pointer. I’ve lived with your
future husband a good many years, and I know what I’m talking about.”

“Bertram, be still,” growled Cyril.

Bertram refused to be still.

“Whenever you want to know anything about Cyril, listen to his playing.
For instance: if, after dinner, you hear a dreamy waltz or a sleepy
nocturne, you may know that all is well. But if on your ears there falls
anything like a dirge, or the wail of a lost spirit gone mad, better
look to your soup and see if it hasn’t been scorched, or taste of your
pudding and see if you didn’t put in salt instead of sugar.”

“Bertram, will you be still?” cut in Cyril, testily, again.

“After all, judging from what Billy tells me,” resumed Bertram,
cheerfully, “what I’ve said won’t be so important to you, for you aren’t
the kind that scorches soups or uses salt for sugar. So maybe I’d better
put it to you this way: if you want a new sealskin coat or an extra
diamond tiara, tackle him when he plays like this!” And with a swift
turn Bertram dropped himself to the piano stool and dashed into a
rollicking melody that half the newsboys of Boston were whistling.

What happened next was a surprise to every one. Bertram, very much as
if he were a naughty little boy, was jerked by a wrathful brother’s hand
off the piano stool. The next moment the wrathful brother himself sat at
the piano, and there burst on five pairs of astonished ears a crashing
dissonance which was but the prelude to music such as few of the party
often heard.

Spellbound they listened while rippling runs and sonorous harmonies
filled the room to overflowing, as if under the fingers of the player
there were--not the keyboard of a piano--but the violins, flutes,
cornets, trombones, bass viols and kettledrums of a full orchestra.

Billy, perhaps, of them all, best understood. She knew that in those
tripping melodies and crashing chords were Cyril’s joy at the presence
of Marie, his wrath at the flippancy of Bertram, his ecstasy at that for
which the rug and curtains stood--the little woman sewing in the radiant
circle of a shaded lamp. Billy knew that all this and more were finding
voice at Cyril’s finger tips. The others, too, understood in a way; but
they, unlike Billy, were not in the habit of finding on a few score bits
of wood and ivory a vent for their moods and fancies.

The music was softer now. The resounding chords and purling runs had
become a bell-like melody that wound itself in and out of a maze of
exquisite harmonies, now hiding, now coming out clear and unafraid, like
a mountain stream emerging into a sunlit meadow from the leafy shadows
of its forest home.

In a breathless hush the melody quivered into silence. It was Bertram
who broke the pause with a long-drawn:

“By George!” Then, a little unsteadily: “If it’s I that set you going
like that, old chap, I’ll come up and play ragtime every day!”

Cyril shrugged his shoulders and got to his feet.

“If you’ve seen all you want of the rug we’ll go down-stairs,” he said
nonchalantly.

“But we haven’t!” chorussed several indignant voices. And for the next
few minutes not even the owner of the beautiful Kirman could find any
fault with the quantity or the quality of the attention bestowed on
his new possession. But Billy, under cover of the chatter, said
reproachfully in his ear:

“Oh, Cyril, to think you can play like that--and won’t--on demand!”

“I can’t--on demand,” shrugged Cyril again.

On the way down-stairs they stopped at William’s rooms.

“I want you to see a couple of Batterseas I got last week,” cried
the collector eagerly, as he led the way to the black velvet square.
“They’re fine--and I think she looks like you,” he finished, turning
to Billy, and holding out one of the knobs, on which was a beautifully
executed miniature of a young girl with dark, dreamy eyes.

“Oh, how pretty!” exclaimed Marie, over Billy’s shoulder. “But what are
they?”

The collector turned, his face alight.

“Mirror knobs. I’ve got lots of them. Would you like to see
them--really? They’re right here.”

The next minute Marie found herself looking into a cabinet where lay a
score or more of round and oval discs of glass, porcelain, and metal,
framed in silver, gilt, and brass, and mounted on long spikes.

“Oh, how pretty,” cried Marie again; “but how--how queer! Tell me about
them, please.”

William drew a long breath. His eyes glistened. William loved to
talk--when he had a curio and a listener.

“I will. Our great-grandmothers used them, you know, to support their
mirrors, or to fasten back their curtains,” he explained ardently.
“Now here’s another Battersea enamel, but it isn’t so good as my new
ones--that face is almost a caricature.”

“But what a beautiful ship--on that round one!” exclaimed Marie. “And
what’s this one?--glass?”

“Yes; but that’s not so rare as the others. Still, it’s pretty enough.
Did you notice this one, with the bright red and blue and green on the
white background?--regular Chinese mode of decoration, that is.”

“Er--any time, William,” began Bertram, mischievously; but William did
not seem to hear.

“Now in this corner,” he went on, warming to his subject, “are
the enamelled porcelains. They were probably made at the Worcester
works--England, you know; and I think many of them are quite as pretty
as the Batterseas. You see it was at Worcester that they invented
that variation of the transfer printing process that they called bat
printing, where they used oil instead of ink, and gelatine instead of
paper. Now engravings for that kind of printing were usually in stipple
work--dots, you know--so the prints on these knobs can easily be
distinguished from those of the transfer printing. See? Now, this one
is--”

“Er, of course, William, any time--” interposed Bertram again, his eyes
twinkling.

William stopped with a laugh.

“Yes, I know. ‘Tis time I talked of something else, Bertram,” he
conceded.

“But ‘twas lovely, and I _was_ interested, really,” claimed Marie.
“Besides, there are such a lot of things here that I’d like to see,” she
finished, turning slowly about.

“These are what he was collecting last year,” murmured Billy, hovering
over a small cabinet where were some beautiful specimens of antique
jewelry brooches, necklaces, armlets, Rajah rings, and anklets, gorgeous
in color and exquisite in workmanship.

“Well, here is something you _will_ enjoy,” declared Bertram, with an
airy flourish. “Do you see those teapots? Well, we can have tea every
day in the year, and not use one of them but five times. I’ve counted.
There are exactly seventy-three,” he concluded, as he laughingly led the
way from the room.

“How about leap year?” quizzed Billy.

“Ho! Trust Will to find another ‘Old Blue’ or a ‘perfect treasure of a
black basalt’ by that time,” shrugged Bertram.

Below William’s rooms was the floor once Bertram’s, but afterwards given
over to the use of Billy and Aunt Hannah. The rooms were open to-day,
and were bright with sunshine and roses; but they were very plainly
unoccupied.

“And you don’t use them yet?” remonstrated Billy, as she paused at an
open door.

“No. These are Mrs. Bertram Henshaw’s rooms,” said the youngest Henshaw
brother in a voice that made Billy hurry away with a dimpling blush.

“They were Billy’s--and they can never seem any one’s but Billy’s, now,”
 declared William to Marie, as they went down the stairs.

“And now for the den and some good stories before the fire,” proposed
Bertram, as the six reached the first floor again.

“But we haven’t seen your pictures, yet,” objected Billy.

Bertram made a deprecatory gesture.

“There’s nothing much--” he began; but he stopped at once, with an odd
laugh. “Well, I sha’n’t say _that_,” he finished, flinging open the door
of his studio, and pressing a button that flooded the room with light.
The next moment, as they stood before those plaques and panels and
canvases--on each of which was a pictured “Billy”--they understood the
change in his sentence, and they laughed appreciatively.

“‘Much,’ indeed!” exclaimed William.

“Oh, how lovely!” breathed Marie.

“My grief and conscience, Bertram! All these--and of Billy? I knew you
had a good many, but--” Aunt Hannah paused impotently, her eyes going
from Bertram’s face to the pictures again.

“But how--when did you do them?” queried Marie.

“Some of them from memory. More of them from life. A lot of them were
just sketches that I did when she was here in the house four or five
years ago,” answered Bertram; “like this, for instance.” And he pulled
into a better light a picture of a laughing, dark-eyed girl holding
against her cheek a small gray kitten, with alert, bright eyes. “The
original and only Spunk,” he announced.

“What a dear little cat!” cried Marie.

“You should have seen it--in the flesh,” remarked Cyril, dryly. “No
paint nor painter could imprison that untamed bit of Satanic mischief on
any canvas that ever grew!”

Everybody laughed--everybody but Billy. Billy, indeed, of them all, had
been strangely silent ever since they entered the studio. She stood now
a little apart. Her eyes were wide, and a bit frightened. Her fingers
were twisting the corners of her handkerchief nervously. She was looking
to the right and to the left, and everywhere she saw--herself.

Sometimes it was her full face, sometimes her profile; sometimes there
were only her eyes peeping from above a fan, or peering from out brown
shadows of nothingness. Once it was merely the back of her head showing
the mass of waving hair with its high lights of burnished bronze. Again
it was still the back of her head with below it the bare, slender
neck and the scarf-draped shoulders. In this picture the curve of a
half-turned cheek showed plainly, and in the background was visible
a hand holding four playing cards, at which the pictured girl was
evidently looking. Sometimes it was a merry Billy with dancing eyes;
sometimes a demure Billy with long lashes caressing a flushed cheek.
Sometimes it was a wistful Billy with eyes that looked straight into
yours with peculiar appeal. But always it was--Billy.

“There, I think the tilt of this chin is perfect.” It was Bertram
speaking.

Billy gave a sudden cry. Her face whitened. She stumbled forward.

“No, no, Bertram, you--you didn’t mean the--the tilt of the chin,” she
faltered wildly.

The man turned in amazement.

“Why--Billy!” he stammered. “Billy, what is it?”

The girl fell back at once. She tried to laugh lightly. She had seen the
dismayed questioning in her lover’s eyes, and in the eyes of William and
the others.

“N-nothing,” she gesticulated hurriedly. “It was nothing at all, truly.”

“But, Billy, it _was_ something.” Bertram’s eyes were still troubled.
“Was it the picture? I thought you liked this picture.”

Billy laughed again--this time more naturally.

“Bertram, I’m ashamed of you--expecting me to say I ‘like’ any of this,”
 she scolded, with a wave of her hands toward the omnipresent Billy.
“Why, I feel as if I were in a room with a thousand mirrors, and that
I’d been discovered putting rouge on my cheeks and lampblack on my
eyebrows!”

William laughed fondly. Aunt Hannah and Marie gave an indulgent smile.
Cyril actually chuckled. Bertram only still wore a puzzled expression as
he laid aside the canvas in his hands.

Billy examined intently a sketch she had found with its back to the
wall. It was not a pretty sketch; it was not even a finished one,
and Billy did not in the least care what it was. But her lips cried
interestedly:

“Oh, Bertram, what is this?”

There was no answer. Bertram was still engaged, apparently, in putting
away some sketches. Over by the doorway leading to the den Marie and
Aunt Hannah, followed by William and Cyril, were just disappearing
behind a huge easel. In another minute the merry chatter of their voices
came from the room beyond. Bertram hurried then straight across the
studio to the girl still bending over the sketch in the corner.

“Bertram!” gasped Billy, as a kiss brushed her cheek.

“Pooh! They’re gone. Besides, what if they did see? Billy, what was the
matter with the tilt of that chin?”

Billy gave an hysterical little laugh--at least, Bertram tried to assure
himself that it was a laugh, though it had sounded almost like a sob.

“Bertram, if you say another word about--about the tilt of that chin, I
shall _scream!_” she panted.

“Why, Billy!”

With a nervous little movement Billy turned and began to reverse the
canvases nearest her.

“Come, sir,” she commanded gayly. “Billy has been on exhibition
quite long enough. It is high time she was turned face to the wall to
meditate, and grow more modest.”

Bertram did not answer. Neither did he make a move to assist her. His
ardent gray eyes were following her slim, graceful figure admiringly.

“Billy, it doesn’t seem true, yet, that you’re really mine,” he said at
last, in a low voice shaken with emotion.

Billy turned abruptly. A peculiar radiance shone in her eyes and
glorified her face. As she stood, she was close to a picture on an easel
and full in the soft glow of the shaded lights above it.

“Then you _do_ want me,” she began, “--just _me!_--not to--” she stopped
short. The man opposite had taken an eager step toward her. On his
face was the look she knew so well, the look she had come almost to
dread--the “painting look.”

“Billy, stand just as you are,” he was saying. “Don’t move. Jove! But
that effect is perfect with those dark shadows beyond, and just your
hair and face and throat showing. I declare, I’ve half a mind to
sketch--” But Billy, with a little cry, was gone.



CHAPTER X

A JOB FOR PETE--AND FOR BERTRAM


The early days in December were busy ones, certainly, in the little
house on Corey Hill. Marie was to be married the twelfth. It was to be
a home wedding, and a very simple one--according to Billy, and according
to what Marie had said it was to be. Billy still serenely spoke of it
as a “simple affair,” but Marie was beginning to be fearful. As the
days passed, bringing with them more and more frequent evidences either
tangible or intangible of orders to stationers, caterers, and florists,
her fears found voice in a protest.

“But Billy, it was to be a _simple_ wedding,” she cried.

“And so it is.”

“But what is this I hear about a breakfast?”

Billy’s chin assumed its most stubborn squareness.

“I don’t know, I’m sure, what you did hear,” she retorted calmly.

“Billy!”

Billy laughed. The chin was just as stubborn, but the smiling lips above
it graced it with an air of charming concession.

“There, there, dear,” coaxed the mistress of Hillside, “don’t fret.
Besides, I’m sure I should think you, of all people, would want your
guests _fed!_”

“But this is so elaborate, from what I hear.”

“Nonsense! Not a bit of it.”

“Rosa says there’ll be salads and cakes and ices--and I don’t know what
all.”

Billy looked concerned.

“Well, of course, Marie, if you’d _rather_ have oatmeal and doughnuts,”
 she began with kind solicitude; but she got no farther.

“Billy!” besought the bride elect. “Won’t you be serious? And there’s
the cake in wedding boxes, too.”

“I know, but boxes are so much easier and cleaner than--just fingers,”
 apologized an anxiously serious voice.

Marie answered with an indignant, grieved glance and hurried on.

“And the flowers--roses, dozens of them, in December! Billy, I can’t let
you do all this for me.”

“Nonsense, dear!” laughed Billy. “Why, I love to do it. Besides, when
you’re gone, just think how lonesome I’ll be! I shall have to adopt
somebody else then--now that Mary Jane has proved to be nothing but a
disappointing man instead of a nice little girl like you,” she finished
whimsically.

Marie did not smile. The frown still lay between her delicate brows.

“And for my trousseau--there were so many things that you simply would
buy!”

“I didn’t get one of the egg-beaters,” Billy reminded her anxiously.

Marie smiled now, but she shook her head, too.

“Billy, I cannot have you do all this for me.”

“Why not?”

At the unexpectedly direct question, Marie fell back a little.

“Why, because I--I can’t,” she stammered. “I can’t get them for myself,
and--and--”

“Don’t you love me?”

A pink flush stole to Marie’s face.

“Indeed I do, dearly.”

“Don’t I love you?”

The flush deepened.

“I--I hope so.”

“Then why won’t you let me do what I want to, and be happy in it? Money,
just money, isn’t any good unless you can exchange it for something you
want. And just now I want pink roses and ice cream and lace flounces
for you. Marie,”--Billy’s voice trembled a little--“I never had a sister
till I had you, and I have had such a good time buying things that I
thought you wanted! But, of course, if you don’t want them--” The words
ended in a choking sob, and down went Billy’s head into her folded arms
on the desk before her.

Marie sprang to her feet and cuddled the bowed head in a loving embrace.

“But I do want them, dear; I want them all--every single one,” she
urged. “Now promise me--promise me that you’ll do them all, just as
you’d planned! You will, won’t you?”

There was the briefest of hesitations, then came the muffled reply:

“Yes--if you really want them.”

“I do, dear--indeed I do. I love pretty weddings, and I--I always hoped
that I could have one--if I ever married. So you must know, dear, how I
really do want all those things,” declared Marie, fervently. “And now I
must go. I promised to meet Cyril at Park Street at three o’clock.”
 And she hurried from the room--and not until she was half-way to her
destination did it suddenly occur to her that she had been urging,
actually urging Miss Billy Neilson to buy for her pink roses, ice cream,
and lace flounces.

Her cheeks burned with shame then. But almost at once she smiled.

“Now wasn’t that just like Billy?” she was saying to herself, with a
tender glow in her eyes.


It was early in December that Pete came one day with a package for Marie
from Cyril. Marie was not at home, and Billy herself went downstairs to
take the package from the old man’s hands.

“Mr. Cyril said to give it to Miss Hawthorn,” stammered the old servant,
his face lighting up as Billy entered the room; “but I’m sure he
wouldn’t mind _your_ taking it.”

“I’m afraid I’ll have to take it, Pete, unless you want to carry it
back with you,” she smiled. “I’ll see that Miss Hawthorn has it the very
first moment she comes in.”

“Thank you, Miss. It does my old eyes good to see your bright face.” He
hesitated, then turned slowly. “Good day, Miss Billy.”

Billy laid the package on the table. Her eyes were thoughtful as she
looked after the old man, who was now almost to the door. Something in
his bowed form appealed to her strangely. She took a quick step toward
him.

“You’ll miss Mr. Cyril, Pete,” she said pleasantly.

The old man stopped at once and turned. He lifted his head a little
proudly.

“Yes, Miss. I--I was there when he was born. Mr. Cyril’s a fine man.”

“Indeed he is. Perhaps it’s your good care that’s helped, some--to make
him so,” smiled the girl, vaguely wishing that she could say something
that would drive the wistful look from the dim old eyes before her.

For a moment Billy thought she had succeeded. The old servant drew
himself stiffly erect. In his eyes shone the loyal pride of more than
fifty years’ honest service. Almost at once, however, the pride died
away, and the wistfulness returned.

“Thank ye, Miss; but I don’t lay no claim to that, of course,” he said.
“Mr. Cyril’s a fine man, and we shall miss him; but--I cal’late changes
must come--to all of us.”

Billy’s brown eyes grew a little misty.

“I suppose they must,” she admitted.

The old man hesitated; then, as if impelled by some hidden force, he
plunged on:

“Yes; and they’ll be comin’ to you one of these days, Miss, and that’s
what I was wantin’ to speak to ye about. I understand, of course, that
when you get there you’ll be wantin’ younger blood to serve ye. My feet
ain’t so spry as they once was, and my old hands blunder sometimes,
in spite of what my head bids ‘em do. So I wanted to tell ye--that of
course I shouldn’t expect to stay. I’d go.”

As he said the words, Pete stood with head and shoulders erect, his eyes
looking straight forward but not at Billy.

“Don’t you _want_ to stay?” The girlish voice was a little reproachful.

Pete’s head drooped.

“Not if--I’m not wanted,” came the husky reply.

With an impulsive movement Billy came straight to the old man’s side and
held out her hand.

“Pete!”

Amazement, incredulity, and a look that was almost terror crossed the
old man’s face; then a flood of dull red blotted them all out and left
only worshipful rapture. With a choking cry he took the slim little hand
in both his rough and twisted ones much as if he were possessing himself
of a treasured bit of eggshell china.

“Miss Billy!”

“Pete, there aren’t a pair of feet in Boston, nor a pair of hands,
either, that I’d rather have serve me than yours, no matter if they
stumble and blunder all day! I shall love stumbles and blunders--if you
make them. Now run home, and don’t ever let me hear another syllable
about your leaving!”

They were not the words Billy had intended to say. She had meant to
speak of his long, faithful service, and of how much they appreciated
it; but, to her surprise, Billy found her own eyes wet and her own voice
trembling, and the words that she would have said she found fast shut
in her throat. So there was nothing to do but to stammer out
something--anything, that would help to keep her from yielding to that
absurd and awful desire to fall on the old servant’s neck and cry.

“Not another syllable!” she repeated sternly.

“Miss Billy!” choked Pete again. Then he turned and fled with anything
but his usual dignity.

Bertram called that evening. When Billy came to him in the living-room,
her slender self was almost hidden behind the swirls of damask linen in
her arms.

Bertram’s eyes grew mutinous.

“Do you expect me to hug all that?” he demanded.

Billy flashed him a mischievous glance.

“Of course not! You don’t _have_ to hug anything, you know.”

For answer he impetuously swept the offending linen into the nearest
chair and drew the girl into his arms.

“Oh! And see how you’ve crushed poor Marie’s table-cloth!” she cried,
with reproachful eyes.

Bertram sniffed imperturbably.

“I’m not sure but I’d like to crush Marie,” he alleged.

“Bertram!”

“I can’t help it. See here, Billy.” He loosened his clasp and held the
girl off at arm’s length, regarding her with stormy eyes. “It’s Marie,
Marie, Marie--always. If I telephone in the morning, you’ve gone
shopping with Marie. If I want you in the afternoon for something,
you’re at the dressmaker’s with Marie. If I call in the evening--”

“I’m here,” interrupted Billy, with decision.

“Oh, yes, you’re here,” admitted Bertram, aggrievedly, “and so are
dozens of napkins, miles of table-cloths, and yards upon yards of lace
and flummydiddles you call ‘doilies.’ They all belong to Marie, and they
fill your arms and your thoughts full, until there isn’t an inch of room
for me. Billy, when is this thing going to end?”

Billy laughed softly. Her eyes danced.

“The twelfth;--that is, there’ll be a--pause, then.”

“Well, I’m thankful if--eh?” broke off the man, with a sudden change of
manner. “What do you mean by ‘a pause’?”

Billy cast down her eyes demurely.

“Well, of course _this_ ends the twelfth with Marie’s wedding; but
I’ve sort of regarded it as an--understudy for one that’s coming next
October, you see.”

“Billy, you darling!” breathed a supremely happy voice in a shell-like
ear--Billy was not at arm’s length now.

Billy smiled, but she drew away with gentle firmness.

“And now I must go back to my sewing,” she said.

Bertram’s arms did not loosen. His eyes had grown mutinous again.

“That is,” she amended, “I must be practising my part of--the
understudy, you know.”

“You darling!” breathed Bertram again; this time, however, he let her
go.

“But, honestly, is it all necessary?” he sighed despairingly, as she
seated herself and gathered the table-cloth into her lap. “Do you have
to do so much of it all?”

“I do,” smiled Billy, “unless you want your brother to run the risk of
leading his bride to the altar and finding her robed in a kitchen apron
with an egg-beater in her hand for a bouquet.”

Bertram laughed.

“Is it so bad as that?”

“No, of course not--quite. But never have I seen a bride so utterly
oblivious to clothes as Marie was till one day in despair I told her
that Cyril never could bear a dowdy woman.”

“As if Cyril, in the old days, ever could bear any sort of woman!”
 scoffed Bertram, merrily.

“I know; but I didn’t mention that part,” smiled Billy. “I just singled
out the dowdy one.”

“Did it work?”

Billy made a gesture of despair.

“Did it work! It worked too well. Marie gave me one horrified look,
then at once and immediately she became possessed with the idea that
she _was_ a dowdy woman. And from that day to this she has pursued every
lurking wrinkle and every fold awry, until her dressmaker’s life isn’t
worth the living; and I’m beginning to think mine isn’t, either, for I
have to assure her at least four times every day now that she is _not_ a
dowdy woman.”

“You poor dear,” laughed Bertram. “No wonder you don’t have time to give
to me!”

A peculiar expression crossed Billy’s face.

“Oh, but I’m not the _only_ one who, at times, is otherwise engaged,
sir,” she reminded him.

“What do you mean?”

“There was yesterday, and last Monday, and last week Wednesday, and--”

“Oh, but you _let_ me off, then,” argued Bertram, anxiously. “And you
said--”

“That I didn’t wish to interfere with your work--which was quite true,”
 interrupted Billy in her turn, smoothly. “By the way,”--Billy was
examining her stitches very closely now--“how is Miss Winthrop’s
portrait coming on?”

“Splendidly!--that is, it _was_, until she began to put off the sittings
for her pink teas and folderols. She’s going to Washington next week,
too, to be gone nearly a fortnight,” finished Bertram, gloomily.

“Aren’t you putting more work than usual into this one--and more
sittings?”

“Well, yes,” laughed Bertram, a little shortly. “You see, she’s changed
the pose twice already.”

“Changed it!”

“Yes. Wasn’t satisfied. Fancied she wanted it different.”

“But can’t you--don’t you have something to say about it?”

“Oh, yes, of course; and she claims she’ll yield to my judgment, anyhow.
But what’s the use? She’s been a spoiled darling all her life, and in
the habit of having her own way about everything. Naturally, under those
circumstances, I can’t expect to get a satisfactory portrait, if she’s
out of tune with the pose. Besides, I will own, so far her suggestions
have made for improvement--probably because she’s been happy in making
them, so her expression has been good.”

Billy wet her lips.

“I saw her the other night,” she said lightly. (If the lightness was
a little artificial Bertram did not seem to notice it.) “She is
certainly--very beautiful.”

“Yes.” Bertram got to his feet and began to walk up and down the little
room. His eyes were alight. On his face the “painting look” was king.
“It’s going to mean a lot to me--this picture, Billy. In the first place
I’m just at the point in my career where a big success would mean a
lot--and where a big failure would mean more. And this portrait is bound
to be one or the other from the very nature of the thing.”

“I-is it?” Billy’s voice was a little faint.

“Yes. First, because of who the sitter is, and secondly because of what
she is. She is, of course, the most famous subject I’ve had, and half
the artistic world knows by this time that Marguerite Winthrop is being
done by Henshaw. You can see what it’ll be--if I fail.”

“But you won’t fail, Bertram!”

The artist lifted his chin and threw back his shoulders.

“No, of course not; but--” He hesitated, frowned, and dropped himself
into a chair. His eyes studied the fire moodily. “You see,” he resumed,
after a moment, “there’s a peculiar, elusive something about her
expression--” (Billy stirred restlessly and gave her thread so savage a
jerk that it broke)”--a something that isn’t easily caught by the brush.
Anderson and Fullam--big fellows, both of them--didn’t catch it. At
least, I’ve understood that neither her family nor her friends are
satisfied with _their_ portraits. And to succeed where Anderson and
Fullam failed--Jove! Billy, a chance like that doesn’t come to a fellow
twice in a lifetime!” Bertram was out of his chair, again, tramping up
and down the little room.

Billy tossed her work aside and sprang to her feet. Her eyes, too, were
alight, now.

“But you aren’t going to fail, dear,” she cried, holding out both her
hands. “You’re going to succeed!”

Bertram caught the hands and kissed first one then the other of their
soft little palms.

“Of course I am,” he agreed passionately, leading her to the sofa, and
seating himself at her side.

“Yes, but you must really _feel_ it,” she urged; “feel the ‘_sure_’ in
yourself. You have to!--to doing things. That’s what I told Mary Jane
yesterday, when he was running on about what _he_ wanted to do--in his
singing, you know.”

Bertram stiffened a little. A quick frown came to his face.

“Mary Jane, indeed! Of all the absurd names to give a full-grown,
six-foot man! Billy, do, for pity’s sake, call him by his name--if he’s
got one.”

Billy broke into a rippling laugh.

“I wish I could, dear,” she sighed ingenuously.

“Honestly, it bothers me because I _can’t_ think of him as anything but
‘Mary Jane.’ It seems so silly!”

“It certainly does--when one remembers his beard.”

“Oh, he’s shaved that off now. He looks rather better, too.”

Bertram turned a little sharply.

“Do you see the fellow--often?”

Billy laughed merrily.

“No. He’s about as disgruntled as you are over the way the wedding
monopolizes everything. He’s been up once or twice to see Aunt Hannah
and to get acquainted, as he expresses it, and once he brought up some
music and we sang; but he declares the wedding hasn’t given him half a
show.”

“Indeed! Well, that’s a pity, I’m sure,” rejoined Bertram, icily.

Billy turned in slight surprise.

“Why, Bertram, don’t you like Mary Jane?”

“Billy, for heaven’s sake! _Hasn’t_ he got any name but that?”

Billy clapped her hands together suddenly.

“There, that makes me think. He told Aunt Hannah and me to guess what
his name was, and we never hit it once. What do you think it is? The
initials are M. J.”

“I couldn’t say, I’m sure. What is it?”

“Oh, he didn’t tell us. You see he left us to guess it.”

“Did he?”

“Yes,” mused Billy, abstractedly, her eyes on the dancing fire. The next
minute she stirred and settled herself more comfortably in the curve
of her lover’s arm. “But there! who cares what his name is? I’m sure I
don’t.”

“Nor I,” echoed Bertram in a voice that he tried to make not too
fervent. He had not forgotten Billy’s surprised: “Why, Bertram, don’t
you like Mary Jane?” and he did not like to call forth a repetition of
it. Abruptly, therefore, he changed the subject. “By the way, what did
you do to Pete to-day?” he asked laughingly. “He came home in a seventh
heaven of happiness babbling of what an angel straight from the sky Miss
Billy was. Naturally I agreed with him on that point. But what did you
do to him?”

Billy smiled.

“Nothing--only engaged him for our butler--for life.”

“Oh, I see. That was dear of you, Billy.”

“As if I’d do anything else! And now for Dong Ling, I suppose, some
day.”

Bertram chuckled.

“Well, maybe I can help you there,” he hinted. “You see, his Celestial
Majesty came to me himself the other day, and said, after sundry and
various preliminaries, that he should be ‘velly much glad’ when the
‘Little Missee’ came to live with me, for then he could go back to China
with a heart at rest, as he had money ‘velly much plenty’ and didn’t
wish to be ‘Melican man’ any longer.”

“Dear me,” smiled Billy, “what a happy state of affairs--for him. But
for you--do you realize, young man, what that means for you? A new wife
and a new cook all at once? And you know I’m not Marie!”

“Ho! I’m not worrying,” retorted Bertram with a contented smile;
“besides, as perhaps you noticed, it wasn’t Marie that I asked--to marry
me!”



CHAPTER XI. A CLOCK AND AUNT HANNAH


Mrs. Kate Hartwell, the Henshaw brothers’ sister from the West, was
expected on the tenth. Her husband could not come, she had written, but
she would bring with her, little Kate, the youngest child. The boys,
Paul and Egbert, would stay with their father.

Billy received the news of little Kate’s coming with outspoken delight.

“The very thing!” she cried. “We’ll have her for a flower girl. She was
a dear little creature, as I remember her.”

Aunt Hannah gave a sudden low laugh.

“Yes, I remember,” she observed. “Kate told me, after you spent the
first day with her, that you graciously informed her that little
Kate was almost as nice as Spunk. Kate did not fully appreciate the
compliment, I fear.”

Billy made a wry face.

“Did I say that? Dear me! I _was_ a terror in those days, wasn’t I?
But then,” and she laughed softly, “really, Aunt Hannah, that was the
prettiest thing I knew how to say, for I considered Spunk the top-notch
of desirability.”

“I think I should have liked to know Spunk,” smiled Marie from the other
side of the sewing table.

“He was a dear,” declared Billy. “I had another ‘most as good when I
first came to Hillside, but he got lost. For a time it seemed as if I
never wanted another, but I’ve about come to the conclusion now that I
do, and I’ve told Bertram to find one for me if he can. You see I
shall be lonesome after you’re gone, Marie, and I’ll have to have
_something_,” she finished mischievously.

“Oh, I don’t mind the inference--as long as I know your admiration of
cats,” laughed Marie.

“Let me see; Kate writes she is coming the tenth,” murmured Aunt Hannah,
going back to the letter in her hand.

“Good!” nodded Billy. “That will give time to put little Kate through
her paces as flower girl.”

“Yes, and it will give Big Kate time to _try_ to make your breakfast a
supper, and your roses pinks--or sunflowers,” cut in a new voice, dryly.

“Cyril!” chorussed the three ladies in horror, adoration, and
amusement--according to whether the voice belonged to Aunt Hannah,
Marie, or Billy.

Cyril shrugged his shoulders and smiled.

“I beg your pardon,” he apologized; “but Rosa said you were in here
sewing, and I told her not to bother. I’d announce myself. Just as I
got to the door I chanced to hear Billy’s speech, and I couldn’t
resist making the amendment. Maybe you’ve forgotten Kate’s love of
managing--but I haven’t,” he finished, as he sauntered over to the chair
nearest Marie.

“No, I haven’t--forgotten,” observed Billy, meaningly.

“Nor I--nor anybody else,” declared a severe voice--both the words and
the severity being most extraordinary as coming from the usually gentle
Aunt Hannah.

“Oh, well, never mind,” spoke up Billy, quickly. “Everything’s all right
now, so let’s forget it. She always meant it for kindness, I’m sure.”

“Even when she told you in the first place what a--er--torment you were
to us?” quizzed Cyril.

“Yes,” flashed Billy. “She was being kind to _you_, then.”

“Humph!” vouchsafed Cyril.

For a moment no one spoke. Cyril’s eyes were on Marie, who was nervously
trying to smooth back a few fluffy wisps of hair that had escaped from
restraining combs and pins.

“What’s the matter with the hair, little girl?” asked Cyril in a
voice that was caressingly irritable. “You’ve been fussing with that
long-suffering curl for the last five minutes!”

Marie’s delicate face flushed painfully.

“It’s got loose--my hair,” she stammered, “and it looks so dowdy that
way!”

Billy dropped her thread suddenly. She sprang for it at once, before
Cyril could make a move to get it. She had to dive far under a chair
to capture it--which may explain why her face was so very red when she
finally reached her seat again.


On the morning of the tenth, Billy, Marie, and Aunt Hannah were once
more sewing together, this time in the little sitting-room at the end of
the hall up-stairs.

Billy’s fingers, in particular, were flying very fast.

“I told John to have Peggy at the door at eleven,” she said, after a
time; “but I think I can finish running in this ribbon before then. I
haven’t much to do to get ready to go.”

“I hope Kate’s train won’t be late,” worried Aunt Hannah.

“I hope not,” replied Billy; “but I told Rosa to delay luncheon, anyway,
till we get here. I--” She stopped abruptly and turned a listening
ear toward the door of Aunt Hannah’s room, which was open. A clock was
striking. “Mercy! that can’t be eleven now,” she cried. “But it must
be--it was ten before I came up-stairs.” She got to her feet hurriedly.

Aunt Hannah put out a restraining hand.

“No, no, dear, that’s half-past ten.”

“But it struck eleven.”

“Yes, I know. It does--at half-past ten.”

“Why, the little wretch,” laughed Billy, dropping back into her chair
and picking up her work again. “The idea of its telling fibs like that
and frightening people half out of their lives! I’ll have it fixed right
away. Maybe John can do it--he’s always so handy about such things.”

“But I don’t want it fixed,” demurred Aunt Hannah.

Billy stared a little.

“You don’t want it fixed! Maybe you like to have it strike eleven when
it’s half-past ten!” Billy’s voice was merrily sarcastic.

“Y-yes, I do,” stammered the lady, apologetically. “You see, I--I worked
very hard to fix it so it would strike that way.”

“_Aunt Hannah!_”

“Well, I did,” retorted the lady, with unexpected spirit. “I wanted to
know what time it was in the night--I’m awake such a lot.”

“But I don’t see.” Billy’s eyes were perplexed. “Why must you make it
tell fibs in order to--to find out the truth?” she laughed.

Aunt Hannah elevated her chin a little.

“Because that clock was always striking one.”

“One!”

“Yes--half-past, you know; and I never knew which half-past it was.”

“But it must strike half-past now, just the same!”

“It does.” There was the triumphant ring of the conqueror in Aunt
Hannah’s voice. “But now it strikes half-past _on the hour_, and the
clock in the hall tells me _then_ what time it is, so I don’t care.”

For one more brief minute Billy stared, before a sudden light of
understanding illumined her face. Then her laugh rang out gleefully.

“Oh, Aunt Hannah, Aunt Hannah,” she gurgled. “If Bertram wouldn’t
call you the limit--making a clock strike eleven so you’ll know it’s
half-past ten!”

Aunt Hannah colored a little, but she stood her ground.

“Well, there’s only half an hour, anyway, now, that I don’t know what
time it is,” she maintained, “for one or the other of those clocks
strikes the hour every thirty minutes. Even during those never-ending
three ones that strike one after the other in the middle of the night,
I can tell now, for the hall clock has a different sound for the
half-hours, you know, so I can tell whether it’s one or a half-past.”

“Of course,” chuckled Billy.

“I’m sure I think it’s a splendid idea,” chimed in Marie, valiantly;
“and I’m going to write it to mother’s Cousin Jane right away. She’s an
invalid, and she’s always lying awake nights wondering what time it is.
The doctor says actually he believes she’d get well if he could find
some way of letting her know the time at night, so she’d get some sleep;
for she simply can’t go to sleep till she knows. She can’t bear a light
in the room, and it wakes her all up to turn an electric switch, or
anything of that kind.”

“Why doesn’t she have one of those phosphorous things?” questioned
Billy.

Marie laughed quietly.

“She did. I sent her one,--and she stood it just one night.”

“Stood it!”

“Yes. She declared it gave her the creeps, and that she wouldn’t have
the spooky thing staring at her all night like that. So it’s got to be
something she can hear, and I’m going to tell her Mrs. Stetson’s plan
right away.”

“Well, I’m sure I wish you would,” cried that lady, with prompt
interest; “and she’ll like it, I’m sure. And tell her if she can hear
a _town_ clock strike, it’s just the same, and even better; for there
aren’t any half-hours at all to think of there.”

“I will--and I think it’s lovely,” declared Marie.

“Of course it’s lovely,” smiled Billy, rising; “but I fancy I’d better
go and get ready to meet Mrs. Hartwell, or the ‘lovely’ thing will be
telling me that it’s half-past eleven!” And she tripped laughingly from
the room.

Promptly at the appointed time John with Peggy drew up before the
door, and Billy, muffled in furs, stepped into the car, which, with its
protecting top and sides and glass wind-shield, was in its winter dress.

“Yes’m, ‘tis a little chilly, Miss,” said John, in answer to her
greeting, as he tucked the heavy robes about her.

“Oh, well, I shall be very comfortable, I’m sure,” smiled Billy. “Just
don’t drive too rapidly, specially coming home. I shall have to get a
limousine, I think, when my ship comes in, John.”

John’s grizzled old face twitched. So evident were the words that were
not spoken that Billy asked laughingly:

“Well, John, what is it?”

John reddened furiously.

“Nothing, Miss. I was only thinkin’ that if you didn’t ‘tend ter haulin’
in so many other folks’s ships, yours might get in sooner.”

“Why, John! Nonsense! I--I love to haul in other folks’s ships,” laughed
the girl, embarrassedly.

“Yes, Miss; I know you do,” grunted John.

Billy colored.

“No, no--that is, I mean--I don’t do it--very much,” she stammered.

John did not answer apparently; but Billy was sure she caught a
low-muttered, indignant “much!” as he snapped the door shut and took his
place at the wheel.

To herself she laughed softly. She thought she possessed the secret now
of some of John’s disapproving glances toward her humble guests of the
summer before.



CHAPTER XII. SISTER KATE


At the station Mrs. Hartwell’s train was found to be gratifyingly on
time; and in due course Billy was extending a cordial welcome to a tall,
handsome woman who carried herself with an unmistakable air of assured
competence. Accompanying her was a little girl with big blue eyes and
yellow curls.

“I am very glad to see you both,” smiled Billy, holding out a friendly
hand to Mrs. Hartwell, and stooping to kiss the round cheek of the
little girl.

“Thank you, you are very kind,” murmured the lady; “but--are you alone,
Billy? Where are the boys?”

“Uncle William is out of town, and Cyril is rushed to death and sent his
excuses. Bertram did mean to come, but he telephoned this morning that
he couldn’t, after all. I’m sorry, but I’m afraid you’ll have to make
the best of just me,” condoled Billy. “They’ll be out to the house
this evening, of course--all but Uncle William. He doesn’t return until
to-morrow.”

“Oh, doesn’t he?” murmured the lady, reaching for her daughter’s hand.

Billy looked down with a smile.

“And this is little Kate, I suppose,” she said, “whom I haven’t seen for
such a long, long time. Let me see, you are how old now?”

“I’m eight. I’ve been eight six weeks.”

Billy’s eyes twinkled.

“And you don’t remember me, I suppose.”

The little girl shook her head.

“No; but I know who you are,” she added, with shy eagerness. “You’re
going to be my Aunt Billy, and you’re going to marry my Uncle William--I
mean, my Uncle Bertram.”

Billy’s face changed color. Mrs. Hartwell gave a despairing gesture.

“Kate, my dear, I told you to be sure and remember that it was your
Uncle Bertram now. You see,” she added in a discouraged aside to Billy,
“she can’t seem to forget the first one. But then, what can you expect?”
 laughed Mrs. Hartwell, a little disagreeably. “Such abrupt changes from
one brother to another are somewhat disconcerting, you know.”

Billy bit her lip. For a moment she said nothing, then, a little
constrainedly, she rejoined:

“Perhaps. Still--let us hope we have the right one, now.”

Mrs. Hartwell raised her eyebrows.

“Well, my dear, I’m not so confident of that. _My_ choice has been and
always will be--William.”

Billy bit her lip again. This time her brown eyes flashed a little.

“Is that so? But you see, after all, _you_ aren’t making the--the
choice.” Billy spoke lightly, gayly; and she ended with a bright little
laugh, as if to hide any intended impertinence.

It was Mrs. Hartwell’s turn to bite her lip--and she did it.

“So it seems,” she rejoined frigidly, after the briefest of pauses.

It was not until they were on their way to Corey Hill some time later
that Mrs. Hartwell turned with the question:

“Cyril is to be married in church, I suppose?”

“No. They both preferred a home wedding.”

“Oh, what a pity! Church weddings are so attractive!”

“To those who like them,” amended Billy in spite of herself.

“To every one, I think,” corrected Mrs. Hartwell, positively.

Billy laughed. She was beginning to discern that it did not do much
harm--nor much good--to disagree with her guest.

“It’s in the evening, then, of course?” pursued Mrs. Hartwell.

“No; at noon.”

“Oh, how could you let them?”

“But they preferred it, Mrs. Hartwell.”

“What if they did?” retorted the lady, sharply. “Can’t you do as you
please in your own home? Evening weddings are so much prettier! We can’t
change now, of course, with the guests all invited. That is, I suppose
you do have guests!”

Mrs. Hartwell’s voice was aggrievedly despairing.

“Oh, yes,” smiled Billy, demurely. “We have guests invited--and I’m
afraid we can’t change the time.”

“No, of course not; but it’s too bad. I conclude there are announcements
only, as I got no cards.

“Announcements only,” bowed Billy.

“I wish Cyril had consulted _me_, a little, about this affair.”

Billy did not answer. She could not trust herself to speak just then.
Cyril’s words of two days before were in her ears: “Yes, and it will
give Big Kate time to try to make your breakfast supper, and your roses
pinks--or sunflowers.”

In a moment Mrs. Hartwell spoke again.

“Of course a noon wedding is quite pretty if you darken the rooms and
have lights--you’re going to do that, I suppose?”

Billy shook her head slowly.

“I’m afraid not, Mrs. Hartwell. That isn’t the plan, now.”

“Not darken the rooms!” exclaimed Mrs. Hartwell. “Why, it won’t--”
 She stopped suddenly, and fell back in her seat. The look of annoyed
disappointment gave way to one of confident relief. “But then, _that
can_ be changed,” she finished serenely.

Billy opened her lips, but she shut them without speaking. After a
minute she opened them again.

“You might consult--Cyril--about that,” she said in a quiet voice.

“Yes, I will,” nodded Mrs. Hartwell, brightly. She was looking pleased
and happy again. “I love weddings. Don’t you? You can _do_ so much with
them!”

“Can you?” laughed Billy, irrepressibly.

“Yes. Cyril is happy, of course. Still, I can’t imagine _him_ in love
with any woman.”

“I think Marie can.”

“I suppose so. I don’t seem to remember her much; still, I think I saw
her once or twice when I was on last June. Music teacher, wasn’t she?”

“Yes. She is a very sweet girl.”

“Hm-m; I suppose so. Still, I think ‘twould have been better if Cyril
could have selected some one that _wasn’t_ musical--say a more domestic
wife. He’s so terribly unpractical himself about household matters.”

Billy gave a ringing laugh and stood up. The car had come to a stop
before her own door.

“Do you? Just you wait till you see Marie’s trousseau of--egg-beaters
and cake tins,” she chuckled.

Mrs. Hartwell looked blank.

“Whatever in the world do you mean, Billy?” she demanded fretfully, as
she followed her hostess from the car. “I declare! aren’t you ever going
to grow beyond making those absurd remarks of yours?”

“Maybe--sometime,” laughed Billy, as she took little Kate’s hand and led
the way up the steps.

Luncheon in the cozy dining-room at Hillside that day was not entirely
a success. At least there were not present exactly the harmony and
tranquillity that are conceded to be the best sauce for one’s food. The
wedding, of course, was the all-absorbing topic of conversation; and
Billy, between Aunt Hannah’s attempts to be polite, Marie’s to be
sweet-tempered, Mrs. Hartwell’s to be dictatorial, and her own to be
pacifying as well as firm, had a hard time of it. If it had not been
for two or three diversions created by little Kate, the meal would have
been, indeed, a dismal failure.

But little Kate--most of the time the personification of proper
little-girlhood--had a disconcerting faculty of occasionally dropping a
word here, or a question there, with startling effect. As, for instance,
when she asked Billy “Who’s going to boss your wedding?” and again when
she calmly informed her mother that when _she_ was married she was not
going to have any wedding at all to bother with, anyhow. She was going
to elope, and she should choose somebody’s chauffeur, because he’d know
how to go the farthest and fastest so her mother couldn’t catch up with
her and tell her how she ought to have done it.

After luncheon Aunt Hannah went up-stairs for rest and recuperation.
Marie took little Kate and went for a brisk walk--for the same purpose.
This left Billy alone with her guest.

“Perhaps you would like a nap, too, Mrs. Hartwell,” suggested Billy,
as they passed into the living-room. There was a curious note of almost
hopefulness in her voice.

Mrs. Hartwell scorned naps, and she said so very emphatically. She said
something else, too.

“Billy, why do you always call me ‘Mrs. Hartwell’ in that stiff, formal
fashion? You used to call me ‘Aunt Kate.’”

“But I was very young then.” Billy’s voice was troubled. Billy had
been trying so hard for the last two hours to be the graciously cordial
hostess to this woman--Bertram’s sister.

“Very true. Then why not ‘Kate’ now?”

Billy hesitated. She was wondering why it seemed so hard to call Mrs.
Hartwell “Kate.”

“Of course,” resumed the lady, “when you’re Bertram’s wife and my
sister--”

“Why, of course,” cried Billy, in a sudden flood of understanding.
Curiously enough, she had never before thought of Mrs. Hartwell as _her_
sister. “I shall be glad to call you ‘Kate’--if you like.”

“Thank you. I shall like it very much, Billy,” nodded the other
cordially. “Indeed, my dear, I’m very fond of you, and I was delighted
to hear you were to be my sister. If only--it could have stayed William
instead of Bertram.”

“But it couldn’t,” smiled Billy. “It wasn’t William--that I loved.”

“But _Bertram!_--it’s so absurd.”

“Absurd!” The smile was gone now.

“Yes. Forgive me, Billy, but I was about as much surprised to hear of
Bertram’s engagement as I was of Cyril’s.”

Billy grew a little white.

“But Bertram was never an avowed--woman-hater, like Cyril, was he?”

“‘Woman-hater’--dear me, no! He was a woman-lover, always. As if his
eternal ‘Face of a Girl’ didn’t prove that! Bertram has always loved
women--to paint. But as for his ever taking them seriously--why, Billy,
what’s the matter?”

Billy had risen suddenly.

“If you’ll excuse me, please, just a few minutes,” Billy said very
quietly. “I want to speak to Rosa in the kitchen. I’ll be back--soon.”

In the kitchen Billy spoke to Rosa--she wondered afterwards what she
said. Certainly she did not stay in the kitchen long enough to say much.
In her own room a minute later, with the door fast closed, she took
from her table the photograph of Bertram and held it in her two hands,
talking to it softly, but a little wildly.

“I didn’t listen! I didn’t stay! Do you hear? I came to you. She
shall not say anything that will make trouble between you and me. I’ve
suffered enough through her already! And she doesn’t _know_--she didn’t
know before, and she doesn’t now. She’s only imagining. I will not
not--_not_ believe that you love me--just to paint. No matter what they
say--all of them! I _will not!_”

Billy put the photograph back on the table then, and went down-stairs to
her guest. She smiled brightly, though her face was a little pale.

“I wondered if perhaps you wouldn’t like some music,” she said
pleasantly, going straight to the piano.

“Indeed I would!” agreed Mrs. Hartwell.

Billy sat down then and played--played as Mrs. Hartwell had never heard
her play before.

“Why, Billy, you amaze me,” she cried, when the pianist stopped and
whirled about. “I had no idea you could play like that!”

Billy smiled enigmatically. Billy was thinking that Mrs. Hartwell would,
indeed, have been surprised if she had known that in that playing
were herself, the ride home, the luncheon, Bertram, and the girl--whom
Bertram _did not love only to paint!_



CHAPTER XIII. CYRIL AND A WEDDING


The twelfth was a beautiful day. Clear, frosty air set the blood to
tingling and the eyes to sparkling, even if it were not your wedding
day; while if it were--

It _was_ Marie Hawthorn’s wedding day, and certainly her eyes sparkled
and her blood tingled as she threw open the window of her room and
breathed long and deep of the fresh morning air before going down to
breakfast.

“They say ‘Happy is the bride that the sun shines on,’” she whispered
softly to an English sparrow that cocked his eye at her from a
neighboring tree branch. “As if a bride wouldn’t be happy, sun or no
sun,” she scoffed tenderly, as she turned to go down-stairs.

As it happens, however, tingling blood and sparkling eyes are a matter
of more than weather, or even weddings, as was proved a little later
when the telephone bell rang.

Kate answered the ring.

“Hullo, is that you, Kate?” called a despairing voice.

“Yes. Good morning, Bertram. Isn’t this a fine day for the wedding?”

“Fine! Oh, yes, I suppose so, though I must confess I haven’t noticed
it--and you wouldn’t, if you had a lunatic on your hands.”

“A lunatic!”

“Yes. Maybe you have, though. Is Marie rampaging around the house like a
wild creature, and asking ten questions and making twenty threats to the
minute?”

“Certainly not! Don’t be absurd, Bertram. What do you mean?”

“See here, Kate, that show comes off at twelve sharp, doesn’t it?”

“Show, indeed!” retorted Kate, indignantly. “The _wedding_ is at noon
sharp--as the best man should know very well.”

“All right; then tell Billy, please, to see that it is sharp, or I won’t
answer for the consequences.”

“What do you mean? What is the matter?”

“Cyril. He’s broken loose at last. I’ve been expecting it all along.
I’ve simply marvelled at the meekness with which he has submitted
himself to be tied up with white ribbons and topped with roses.”

“Nonsense, Bertram!”

“Well, it amounts to that. Anyhow, he thinks it does, and he’s wild. I
wish you could have heard the thunderous performance on his piano with
which he woke me up this morning. Billy says he plays everything--his
past, present, and future. All is, if he was playing his future this
morning, I pity the girl who’s got to live it with him.”

“Bertram!”

Bertram chuckled remorselessly.

“Well, I do. But I’ll warrant he wasn’t playing his future this morning.
He was playing his present--the wedding. You see, he’s just waked up to
the fact that it’ll be a perfect orgy of women and other confusion,
and he doesn’t like it. All the samee,{sic} I’ve had to assure him just
fourteen times this morning that the ring, the license, the carriage,
the minister’s fee, and my sanity are all O. K. When he isn’t asking
questions he’s making threats to snake the parson up there an hour ahead
of time and be off with Marie before a soul comes.”

“What an absurd idea!”

“Cyril doesn’t think so. Indeed, Kate, I’ve had a hard struggle to
convince him that the guests wouldn’t think it the most delightful
experience of their lives if they should come and find the ceremony over
with and the bride gone.”

“Well, you remind Cyril, please, that there are other people besides
himself concerned in this wedding,” observed Kate, icily.

“I have,” purred Bertram, “and he says all right, let them have it,
then. He’s gone now to look up proxy marriages, I believe.”

“Proxy marriages, indeed! Come, come, Bertram, I’ve got something to do
this morning besides to stand here listening to your nonsense. See
that you and Cyril get here on time--that’s all!” And she hung up the
receiver with an impatient jerk.

She turned to confront the startled eyes of the bride elect.

“What is it? Is anything wrong--with Cyril?” faltered Marie.

Kate laughed and raised her eyebrows slightly.

“Nothing but a little stage fright, my dear.”

“Stage fright!”

“Yes. Bertram says he’s trying to find some one to play his rôle, I
believe, in the ceremony.”

“_Mrs. Hartwell!_”

At the look of dismayed terror that came into Marie’s face, Mrs.
Hartwell laughed reassuringly.

“There, there, dear child, don’t look so horror-stricken. There probably
never was a man yet who wouldn’t have fled from the wedding part of his
marriage if he could; and you know how Cyril hates fuss and feathers.
The wonder to me is that he’s stood it as long as he has. I thought I
saw it coming, last night at the rehearsal--and now I know I did.”

Marie still looked distressed.

“But he never said--I thought--” She stopped helplessly.

“Of course he didn’t, child. He never said anything but that he loved
you, and he never thought anything but that you were going to be his.
Men never do--till the wedding day. Then they never think of anything
but a place to run,” she finished laughingly, as she began to arrange on
a stand the quantity of little white boxes waiting for her.

“But if he’d told me--in time, I wouldn’t have had a thing--but the
minister,” faltered Marie.

“And when you think so much of a pretty wedding, too? Nonsense! It isn’t
good for a man, to give up to his whims like that!”

Marie’s cheeks grew a deeper pink. Her nostrils dilated a little.

“It wouldn’t be a ‘whim,’ Mrs. Hartwell, and I should be _glad_ to give
up,” she said with decision.

Mrs. Hartwell laughed again, her amused eyes on Marie’s face.

“Dear me, child! don’t you know that if men had their way, they’d--well,
if men married men there’d never be such a thing in the world as a
shower bouquet or a piece of wedding cake!”

There was no reply. A little precipitately Marie turned and hurried
away. A moment later she was laying a restraining hand on Billy, who was
filling tall vases with superb long-stemmed roses in the kitchen.

“Billy, please,” she panted, “couldn’t we do without those? Couldn’t we
send them to some--some hospital?--and the wedding cake, too, and--”

“The wedding cake--to some _hospital!_”

“No, of course not--to the hospital. It would make them sick to eat it,
wouldn’t it?” That there was no shadow of a smile on Marie’s face showed
how desperate, indeed, was her state of mind. “I only meant that I
didn’t want them myself, nor the shower bouquet, nor the rooms darkened,
nor little Kate as the flower girl--and would you mind very much if I
asked you not to be my maid of honor?”

“_Marie!_”

Marie covered her face with her hands then and began to sob brokenly;
so there was nothing for Billy to do but to take her into her arms with
soothing little murmurs and pettings. By degrees, then, the whole story
came out.

Billy almost laughed--but she almost cried, too. Then she said:

“Dearie, I don’t believe Cyril feels or acts half so bad as Bertram and
Kate make out, and, anyhow, if he did, it’s too late now to--to send the
wedding cake to the hospital, or make any other of the little changes
you suggest.” Billy’s lips puckered into a half-smile, but her eyes were
grave. “Besides, there are your music pupils trimming the living-room
this minute with evergreen, there’s little Kate making her flower-girl
wreath, and Mrs. Hartwell stacking cake boxes in the hall, to say
nothing of Rosa gloating over the best china in the dining-room, and
Aunt Hannah putting purple bows into the new lace cap she’s counting
on wearing. Only think how disappointed they’d all be if I should say:
‘Never mind--stop that. Marie’s just going to have a minister. No fuss,
no feathers!’ Why, dearie, even the roses are hanging their heads for
grief,” she went on mistily, lifting with gentle fingers one of the
full-petalled pink beauties near her. “Besides, there’s your--guests.”

“Oh, of course, I knew I couldn’t--really,” sighed Marie, as she turned
to go up-stairs, all the light and joy gone from her face.

Billy, once assured that Marie was out of hearing, ran to the telephone.

Bertram answered.

“Bertram, tell Cyril I want to speak to him, please.”

“All right, dear, but go easy. Better strike up your tuning fork to find
his pitch to-day. You’ll discover it’s a high one, all right.”

A moment later Cyril’s tersely nervous “Good morning, Billy,” came
across the line.

Billy drew in her breath and cast a hurriedly apprehensive glance over
her shoulder to make sure Marie was not near.

“Cyril,” she called in a low voice, “if you care a shred for Marie, for
heaven’s sake call her up and tell her that you dote on pink roses, and
pink ribbons, and pink breakfasts--and pink wedding cake!”

“But I don’t.”

“Oh, yes, you do--to-day! You would--if you could see Marie now.”

“What do you mean?”

“Nothing, only she overheard part of Bertram’s nonsensical talk with
Kate a little while ago, and she’s ready to cast the last ravelling
of white satin and conventionality behind her, and go with you to the
justice of the peace.”

“Sensible girl!”

“Yes, but she can’t, you know, with fifty guests coming to the wedding,
and twice as many more to the reception. Honestly, Cyril, she’s
broken-hearted. You must do something. She’s--coming!” And the receiver
clicked sharply into place.

Five minutes later Marie was called to the telephone. Dejectedly,
wistful-eyed, she went. Just what were the words that hummed across the
wire into the pink little ear of the bride-to-be, Billy never knew;
but a Marie that was anything but wistful-eyed and dejected left the
telephone a little later, and was heard very soon in the room above
trilling merry snatches of a little song. Contentedly, then, Billy went
back to her roses.

It was a pretty wedding, a very pretty wedding. Every one said that. The
pink and green of the decorations, the soft lights (Kate had had her way
about darkening the rooms), the pretty frocks and smiling faces of the
guests all helped. Then there were the dainty flower girl, little Kate,
the charming maid of honor, Billy, the stalwart, handsome best man,
Bertram, to say nothing of the delicately beautiful bride, who looked
like some fairy visitor from another world in the floating shimmer of
her gossamer silk and tulle. There was, too, not quite unnoticed, the
bridegroom; tall, of distinguished bearing, and with features that were
clear cut and-to-day-rather pale.

Then came the reception--the “women and confusion” of Cyril’s
fears--followed by the going away of the bride and groom with its merry
warfare of confetti and old shoes.

At four o’clock, however, with only William and Bertram remaining for
guests, something like quiet descended at last on the little house.

“Well, it’s over,” sighed Billy, dropping exhaustedly into a big chair
in the living-room.

“And _well_ over,” supplemented Aunt Hannah, covering her white shawl
with a warmer blue one.

“Yes, I think it was,” nodded Kate. “It was really a very pretty
wedding.”

“With your help, Kate--eh?” teased William.

“Well, I flatter myself I did do some good,” bridled Kate, as she turned
to help little Kate take the flower wreath from her head.

“Even if you did hurry into my room and scare me into conniption fits
telling me I’d be late,” laughed Billy.

Kate tossed her head.

“Well, how was I to know that Aunt Hannah’s clock only meant half-past
eleven when it struck twelve?” she retorted.

Everybody laughed.

“Oh, well, it was a pretty wedding,” declared William, with a long sigh.

“It’ll do--for an understudy,” said Bertram softly, for Billy’s ears
alone.

Only the added color and the swift glance showed that Billy heard, for
when she spoke she said:

“And didn’t Cyril behave beautifully? ‘Most every time I looked at him
he was talking to some woman.”

“Oh, no, he wasn’t--begging your pardon, my dear,” objected Bertram. “I
watched him, too, even more closely than you did, and it was always the
_woman_ who was talking to _Cyril!_”

Billy laughed.

“Well, anyhow,” she maintained, “he listened. He didn’t run away.”

“As if a bridegroom could!” cried Kate.

“I’m going to,” avowed Bertram, his nose in the air.

“Pooh!” scoffed Kate. Then she added eagerly: “You must be married in
church, Billy, and in the evening.”

Bertram’s nose came suddenly out of the air. His eyes met Kate’s
squarely.

“Billy hasn’t decided yet how _she_ does want to be married,” he said
with unnecessary emphasis.

Billy laughed and interposed a quick change of subject.

“I think people had a pretty good time, too, for a wedding, don’t you?”
 she asked. “I was sorry Mary Jane couldn’t be here--‘twould have been
such a good chance for him to meet our friends.”

“As--_Mary Jane?_” asked Bertram, a little stiffly.

“Really, my dear,” murmured Aunt Hannah, “I think it _would_ be more
respectful to call him by his name.”

“By the way, what is his name?” questioned William.

“That’s what we don’t know,” laughed Billy.

“Well, you know the ‘Arkwright,’ don’t you?” put in Bertram. Bertram,
too, laughed, but it was a little forcedly. “I suppose if you knew his
name was ‘Methuselah,’ you wouldn’t call him that--yet, would you?”

Billy clapped her hands, and threw a merry glance at Aunt Hannah.

“There! we never thought of ‘Methuselah,’” she gurgled gleefully. “Maybe
it _is_ ‘Methuselah,’ now--‘Methuselah John’! You see, he’s told us to
try to guess it,” she explained, turning to William; “but, honestly, I
don’t believe, whatever it is, I’ll ever think of him as anything but
‘Mary Jane.’”

“Well, as far as I can judge, he has nobody but himself to thank for
that, so he can’t do any complaining,” smiled William, as he rose to go.
“Well, how about it, Bertram? I suppose you’re going to stay a while to
comfort the lonely--eh, boy?”

“Of course he is--and so are you, too, Uncle William,” spoke up Billy,
with affectionate cordiality. “As if I’d let you go back to a forlorn
dinner in that great house to-night! Indeed, no!”

William smiled, hesitated, and sat down.

“Well, of course--” he began.

“Yes, of course,” finished Billy, quickly. “I’ll telephone Pete that
you’ll stay here--both of you.”

It was at this point that little Kate, who had been turning interested
eyes from one brother to the other, interposed a clear, high-pitched
question.

“Uncle William, didn’t you _want_ to marry my going-to-be-Aunt Billy?”

“Kate!” gasped her mother, “didn’t I tell you--” Her voice trailed into
an incoherent murmur of remonstrance.

Billy blushed. Bertram said a low word under his breath. Aunt Hannah’s
“Oh, my grief and conscience!” was almost a groan.

William laughed lightly.

“Well, my little lady,” he suggested, “let us put it the other way and
say that quite probably she didn’t want to marry me.”

“Does she want to marry Uncle Bertram?” “Kate!” gasped Billy and Mrs.
Hartwell together this time, fearful of what might be coming next.

“We’ll hope so,” nodded Uncle William, speaking in a cheerfully
matter-of-fact voice, intended to discourage curiosity.

The little girl frowned and pondered. Her elders cast about in their
minds for a speedy change of subject; but their somewhat scattered wits
were not quick enough. It was little Kate who spoke next.

“Uncle William, would she have got Uncle Cyril if Aunt Marie hadn’t
nabbed him first?”

“Kate!” The word was a chorus of dismay this time.

Mrs. Hartwell struggled to her feet.

“Come, come, Kate, we must go up-stairs--to bed,” she stammered.

The little girl drew back indignantly.

“To bed? Why, mama, I haven’t had my supper yet!”

“What? Oh, sure enough--the lights! I forgot. Well, then, come up--to
change your dress,” finished Mrs. Hartwell, as with a despairing look
and gesture she led her young daughter from the room.



CHAPTER XIV. M. J. MAKES ANOTHER MOVE


Billy came down-stairs on the thirteenth of December to find everywhere
the peculiar flatness that always follows a day which for weeks has been
the focus of one’s aims and thoughts and labor.

“It’s just as if everything had stopped at Marie’s wedding, and there
wasn’t anything more to do,” she complained to Aunt Hannah at the
breakfast table. “Everything seems so--queer!”

“It won’t--long, dear,” smiled Aunt Hannah, tranquilly, as she buttered
her roll, “specially after Bertram comes back. How long does he stay in
New York?”

“Only three days; but I’m just sure it’s going to seem three weeks,
now,” sighed Billy. “But he simply had to go--else he wouldn’t have
gone.”

“I’ve no doubt of it,” observed Aunt Hannah. And at the meaning
emphasis of her words, Billy laughed a little. After a minute she said
aggrievedly:

“I had supposed that I could at least have a sort of ‘after the ball’
celebration this morning picking up and straightening things around.
But John and Rosa have done it all. There isn’t so much as a rose
leaf anywhere on the floor. Of course most of the flowers went to
the hospital last night, anyway. As for Marie’s room--it looks as
spick-and-span as if it had never seen a scrap of ribbon or an inch of
tulle.”

“But--the wedding presents?”

“All carried down to the kitchen and half packed now, ready to go over
to the new home. John says he’ll take them over in Peggy this afternoon,
after he takes Mrs. Hartwell’s trunk to Uncle William’s.”

“Well, you can at least go over to the apartment and work,” suggested
Aunt Hannah, hopefully.

“Humph! Can I?” scoffed Billy. “As if I could--when Marie left strict
orders that not one thing was to be touched till she got here. They
arranged everything but the presents before the wedding, anyway; and
Marie wants to fix those herself after she gets back. Mercy! Aunt
Hannah, if I should so much as move a plate one inch in the china
closet, Marie would know it--and change it when she got home,” laughed
Billy, as she rose from the table. “No, I can’t go to work over there.”

“But there’s your music, my dear. You said you were going to write some
new songs after the wedding.”

“I was,” sighed Billy, walking to the window, and looking listlessly
at the bare, brown world outside; “but I can’t write songs--when there
aren’t any songs in my head to write.”

“No, of course not; but they’ll come, dear, in time. You’re tired, now,”
 soothed Aunt Hannah, as she turned to leave the room.

“It’s the reaction, of course,” murmured Aunt Hannah to herself, on the
way up-stairs. “She’s had the whole thing on her hands--dear child!”

A few minutes later, from the living-room, came a plaintive little minor
melody. Billy was at the piano.

Kate and little Kate had, the night before, gone home with William.
It had been a sudden decision, brought about by the realization that
Bertram’s trip to New York would leave William alone. Her trunk was to
be carried there to-day, and she would leave for home from there, at the
end of a two or three days’ visit.

It began to snow at twelve o’clock. All the morning the sky had been
gray and threatening; and the threats took visible shape at noon in
myriads of white snow feathers that filled the air to the blinding
point, and turned the brown, bare world into a thing of fairylike
beauty. Billy, however, with a rare frown upon her face, looked out upon
it with disapproving eyes.

“I _was_ going in town--and I believe I’ll go now,” she cried.

“Don’t, dear, please don’t,” begged Aunt Hannah. “See, the flakes are
smaller now, and the wind is coming up. We’re in for a blizzard--I’m
sure we are. And you know you have some cold, already.”

“All right,” sighed Billy. “Then it’s me for the knitting work and the
fire, I suppose,” she finished, with a whimsicality that did not hide
the wistful disappointment of her voice.

She was not knitting, however, she was sewing with Aunt Hannah when at
four o’clock Rosa brought in the card.

Billy glanced at the name, then sprang to her feet with a glad little
cry.

“It’s Mary Jane!” she exclaimed, as Rosa disappeared. “Now wasn’t he a
dear to think to come to-day? You’ll be down, won’t you?”

Aunt Hannah smiled even while she frowned.

“Oh, Billy!” she remonstrated. “Yes, I’ll come down, of course, a little
later, and I’m glad _Mr. Arkwright_ came,” she said with reproving
emphasis.

Billy laughed and threw a mischievous glance over her shoulder.

“All right,” she nodded. “I’ll go and tell _Mr. Arkwright_ you’ll be
down directly.”

In the living-room Billy greeted her visitor with a frankly cordial
hand.

“How did you know, Mr. Arkwright, that I was feeling specially restless
and lonesome to-day?” she demanded.

A glad light sprang to the man’s dark eyes.

“I didn’t know it,” he rejoined. “I only knew that I was specially
restless and lonesome myself.”

Arkwright’s voice was not quite steady. The unmistakable friendliness in
the girl’s words and manner had sent a quick throb of joy to his heart.
Her evident delight in his coming had filled him with rapture. He could
not know that it was only the chill of the snowstorm that had given
warmth to her handclasp, the dreariness of the day that had made her
greeting so cordial, the loneliness of a maiden whose lover is away that
had made his presence so welcome.

“Well, I’m glad you came, anyway,” sighed Billy, contentedly; “though I
suppose I ought to be sorry that you were lonesome--but I’m afraid I’m
not, for now you’ll know just how I felt, so you won’t mind if I’m a
little wild and erratic. You see, the tension has snapped,” she added
laughingly, as she seated herself.

“Tension?”

“The wedding, you know. For so many weeks we’ve been seeing just
December twelfth, that we’d apparently forgotten all about the
thirteenth that came after it; so when I got up this morning I felt
just as you do when the clock has stopped ticking. But it was a lovely
wedding, Mr. Arkwright. I’m sorry you could not be here.”

“Thank you; so am I--though usually, I will confess, I’m not much
good at attending ‘functions’ and meeting strangers. As perhaps you’ve
guessed, Miss Neilson, I’m not particularly a society chap.”

“Of course you aren’t! People who are doing things--real things--seldom
are. But we aren’t the society kind ourselves, you know--not the capital
S kind. We like sociability, which is vastly different from liking
Society. Oh, we have friends, to be sure, who dote on ‘pink teas
and purple pageants,’ as Cyril calls them; and we even go ourselves
sometimes. But if you had been here yesterday, Mr. Arkwright, you’d have
met lots like yourself, men and women who are doing things: singing,
playing, painting, illustrating, writing. Why, we even had a poet,
sir--only he didn’t have long hair, so he didn’t look the part a bit,”
 she finished laughingly.

“Is long hair--necessary--for poets?” Arkwright’s smile was quizzical.

“Dear me, no; not now. But it used to be, didn’t it? And for painters,
too. But now they look just like--folks.”

Arkwright laughed.

“It isn’t possible that you are sighing for the velvet coats and flowing
ties of the past, is it, Miss Neilson?”

“I’m afraid it is,” dimpled Billy. “I _love_ velvet coats and flowing
ties!”

“May singers wear them? I shall don them at once, anyhow, at a venture,”
 declared the man, promptly.

Billy smiled and shook her head.

“I don’t think you will. You all like your horrid fuzzy tweeds and
worsteds too well!”

“You speak with feeling. One would almost suspect that you already had
tried to bring about a reform--and failed. Perhaps Mr. Cyril, now, or
Mr. Bertram--” Arkwright stopped with a whimsical smile.

Billy flushed a little. As it happened, she had, indeed, had a merry
tilt with Bertram on that very subject, and he had laughingly promised
that his wedding present to her would be a velvet house coat for
himself. It was on the point of Billy’s tongue now to say this to
Arkwright; but another glance at the provoking smile on his lips drove
the words back in angry confusion. For the second time, in the presence
of this man, Billy found herself unable to refer to her engagement to
Bertram Henshaw--though this time she did not in the least doubt that
Arkwright already knew of it.

With a little gesture of playful scorn she rose and went to the piano.

“Come, let us try some duets,” she suggested. “That’s lots nicer than
quarrelling over velvet coats; and Aunt Hannah will be down presently to
hear us sing.”

Before she had ceased speaking, Arkwright was at her side with an
exclamation of eager acquiescence.

It was after the second duet that Arkwright asked, a little diffidently.

“Have you written any new songs lately?”

“No.”

“You’re going to?”

“Perhaps--if I find one to write.”

“You mean--you have no words?”

“Yes--and no. I have some words, both of my own and other people’s; but
I haven’t found in any one of them, yet--a melody.”

Arkwright hesitated. His right hand went almost to his inner coat
pocket--then fell back at his side. The next moment he picked up a sheet
of music.

“Are you too tired to try this?” he asked.

A puzzled frown appeared on Billy’s face.

“Why, no, but--”

“Well, children, I’ve come down to hear the music,” announced Aunt
Hannah, smilingly, from the doorway; “only--Billy, _will_ you run up
and get my pink shawl, too? This room _is_ colder than I thought, and
there’s only the white one down here.”

“Of course,” cried Billy, rising at once. “You shall have a dozen
shawls, if you like,” she laughed, as she left the room.

What a cozy time it was--the hour that followed, after Billy returned
with the pink shawl! Outside, the wind howled at the windows and flung
the snow against the glass in sleety crashes. Inside, the man and the
girl sang duets until they were tired; then, with Aunt Hannah, they
feasted royally on the buttered toast, tea, and frosted cakes that
Rosa served on a little table before the roaring fire. It was then that
Arkwright talked of himself, telling them something of his studies, and
of the life he was living.

“After all, you see there’s just this difference between my friends
and yours,” he said, at last. “Your friends _are_ doing things. They’ve
succeeded. Mine haven’t, yet--they’re only _trying_.”

“But they will succeed,” cried Billy.

“Some of them,” amended the man.

“Not--all of them?” Billy looked a little troubled.

Arkwright shook his head slowly.

“No. They couldn’t--all of them, you know. Some haven’t the talent, some
haven’t the perseverance, and some haven’t the money.”

“But all that seems such a pity-when they’ve tried,” grieved Billy.

“It is a pity, Miss Neilson. Disappointed hopes are always a pity,
aren’t they?”

“Y-yes,” sighed the girl. “But--if there were only something one could
do to--help!”

Arkwright’s eyes grew deep with feeling, but his voice, when he spoke,
was purposely light.

“I’m afraid that would be quite too big a contract for even your
generosity, Miss Neilson--to mend all the broken hopes in the world,” he
prophesied.

“I have known great good to come from great disappointments,” remarked
Aunt Hannah, a bit didactically.

“So have I,” laughed Arkwright, still determined to drive the troubled
shadow from the face he was watching so intently. “For instance: a
fellow I know was feeling all cut up last Friday because he was just too
late to get into Symphony Hall on the twenty-five-cent admission. Half
an hour afterwards his disappointment was turned to joy--a friend who
had an orchestra chair couldn’t use his ticket that day, and so handed
it over to him.”

Billy turned interestedly.

“What are those twenty-five-cent tickets to the Symphony?”

“Then--you don’t know?”

“Not exactly. I’ve heard of them, in a vague fashion.”

“Then you’ve missed one of the sights of Boston if you haven’t ever
seen that long line of patient waiters at the door of Symphony Hall of a
Friday morning.”

“Morning! But the concert isn’t till afternoon!”

“No, but the waiting is,” retorted Arkwright. “You see, those admissions
are limited--five hundred and five, I believe--and they’re rush seats,
at that. First come, first served; and if you’re too late you aren’t
served at all. So the first arrival comes bright and early. I’ve heard
that he has been known to come at peep of day when there’s a Paderewski
or a Melba for a drawing card. But I’ve got my doubts of that. Anyhow,
I never saw them there much before half-past eight. But many’s the cold,
stormy day I’ve seen those steps in front of the Hall packed for hours,
and a long line reaching away up the avenue.”

Billy’s eyes widened.

“And they’ll stand all that time and wait?”

“To be sure they will. You see, each pays twenty-five cents at the door,
until the limit is reached, then the rest are turned away. Naturally
they don’t want to be turned away, so they try to get there early enough
to be among the fortunate five hundred and five. Besides, the earlier
you are, the better seat you are likely to get.”

“But only think of _standing_ all that time!”

“Oh, they bring camp chairs, sometimes, I’ve heard, and then there are
the steps. You don’t know what a really fine seat a stone step is--if
you have a _big_ enough bundle of newspapers to cushion it with! They
bring their luncheons, too, with books, papers, and knitting work for
fine days, I’ve been told--some of them. All the comforts of home, you
see,” smiled Arkwright.

“Why, how--how dreadful!” stammered Billy.

“Oh, but they don’t think it’s dreadful at all,” corrected Arkwright,
quickly. “For twenty-five cents they can hear all that you hear down in
your orchestra chair, for which you’ve paid so high a premium.”

“But who--who are they? Where do they come from? Who _would_ go and
stand hours like that to get a twenty-five-cent seat?” questioned Billy.

“Who are they? Anybody, everybody, from anywhere? everywhere; people
who have the music hunger but not the money to satisfy it,” he rejoined.
“Students, teachers, a little milliner from South Boston, a little
dressmaker from Chelsea, a housewife from Cambridge, a stranger from the
uttermost parts of the earth; maybe a widow who used to sit down-stairs,
or a professor who has seen better days. Really to know that line,
you should see it for yourself, Miss Neilson,” smiled Arkwright, as
he reluctantly rose to go. “Some Friday, however, before you take your
seat, just glance up at that packed top balcony and judge by the
faces you see there whether their owners think they’re getting their
twenty-five-cents’ worth, or not.”

“I will,” nodded Billy, with a smile; but the smile came from her lips
only, not her eyes: Billy was wishing, at that moment, that she owned
the whole of Symphony Hall--to give away. But that was like Billy. When
she was seven years old she had proposed to her Aunt Ella that they take
all the thirty-five orphans from the Hampden Falls Orphan Asylum to live
with them, so that little Sallie Cook and the other orphans might have
ice cream every day, if they wanted it. Since then Billy had always been
trying--in a way--to give ice cream to some one who wanted it.

Arkwright was almost at the door when he turned abruptly. His face was
an abashed red. From his pocket he had taken a small folded paper.

“Do you suppose--in this--you might find--that melody?” he stammered in
a low voice. The next moment he was gone, having left in Billy’s fingers
a paper upon which was written in a clear-cut, masculine hand six
four-line stanzas.

Billy read them at once, hurriedly, then more carefully.

“Why, they’re beautiful,” she breathed, “just beautiful! Where did he
get them, I wonder? It’s a love song--and such a pretty one! I believe
there _is_ a melody in it,” she exulted, pausing to hum a line or
two. “There is--I know there is; and I’ll write it--for Bertram,” she
finished, crossing joyously to the piano.

Half-way down Corey Hill at that moment, Arkwright was buffeting
the wind and snow. He, too, was thinking joyously of those
stanzas--joyously, yet at the same time fearfully. Arkwright himself had
written those lines--though not for Bertram.



CHAPTER XV. “MR. BILLY” AND “MISS MARY JANE”


On the fourteenth of December Billy came down-stairs alert, interested,
and happy. She had received a dear letter from Bertram (mailed on the
way to New York), the sun was shining, and her fingers were fairly
tingling to put on paper the little melody that was now surging
riotously through her brain. Emphatically, the restlessness of the day
before was gone now. Once more Billy’s “clock” had “begun to tick.”

After breakfast Billy went straight to the telephone and called up
Arkwright. Even one side of the conversation Aunt Hannah did not hear
very clearly; but in five minutes a radiant-faced Billy danced into the
room.

“Aunt Hannah, just listen! Only think--Mary Jane wrote the words
himself, so of course I can use them!”

“Billy, dear, _can’t_ you say ‘Mr. Arkwright’?” pleaded Aunt Hannah.

Billy laughed and gave the anxious-eyed little old lady an impulsive
hug.

“Of course! I’ll say ‘His Majesty’ if you like, dear,” she chuckled.
“But did you hear--did you realize? They’re his own words, so there’s no
question of rights or permission, or anything. And he’s coming up this
afternoon to hear my melody, and to make a few little changes in the
words, maybe. Oh, Aunt Hannah, you don’t know how good it seems to get
into my music again!”

“Yes, yes, dear, of course; but--” Aunt Hannah’s sentence ended in a
vaguely troubled pause.

Billy turned in surprise.

“Why, Aunt Hannah, aren’t you glad? You _said_ you’d be glad!”

“Yes, dear; and I am--very glad. It’s only--if it doesn’t take too much
time--and if Bertram doesn’t mind.”

Billy flushed. She laughed a little bitterly.

“No, it won’t take too much time, I fancy, and--so far as Bertram is
concerned--if what Sister Kate says is true, Aunt Hannah, he’ll be glad
to have me occupy a little of my time with something besides himself.”

“Fiddlededee!” bristled Aunt Hannah.

“What did she mean by that?”

Billy smiled ruefully.

“Well, probably I did need it. She said it night before last just before
she went home with Uncle William. She declared that I seemed to forget
entirely that Bertram belonged to his Art first, before he belonged to
me; and that it was exactly as she had supposed it would be--a perfect
absurdity for Bertram to think of marrying anybody.”

“Fiddlededee!” ejaculated the irate Aunt Hannah, even more sharply. “I
hope you have too much good sense to mind what Kate says, Billy.”

“Yes, I know,” sighed the girl; “but of course I can see some things for
myself, and I suppose I did make--a little fuss about his going to New
York the other night. And I will own that I’ve had a real struggle with
myself sometimes, lately, not to mind--his giving so much time to
his portrait painting. And of course both of those are very
reprehensible--in an artist’s wife,” she finished, a little tremulously.

“Humph! Well, I don’t think I should worry about that,” observed Aunt
Hannah with grim positiveness.

“No, I don’t mean to,” smiled Billy, wistfully. “I only told you so
you’d understand that it was just as well if I did have something to
take up my mind--besides Bertram. And of course music would be the most
natural thing.”

“Yes, of course,” agreed Aunt Hannah.

“And it seems actually almost providential that Mary--I mean Mr.
Arkwright is here to help me, now that Cyril is gone,” went on Billy,
still a little wistfully.

“Yes, of course. He isn’t like--a stranger,” murmured Aunt Hannah. Aunt
Hannah’s voice sounded as if she were trying to convince herself--of
something.

“No, indeed! He seems just like one of the family to me, almost as if he
were really--your niece, Mary Jane,” laughed Billy.

Aunt Hannah moved restlessly.

“Billy,” she hazarded, “he knows, of course, of your engagement?”

“Why, of course he does, Aunt Hannah everybody does!” Billy’s eyes were
plainly surprised.

“Yes, yes, of course--he must,” subsided Aunt Hannah, confusedly, hoping
that Billy would not divine the hidden reason behind her question. She
was relieved when Billy’s next words showed that she had not divined it.

“I told you, didn’t I? He’s coming up this afternoon. He can’t get here
till five, though; but he’s so interested! He’s about as crazy over the
thing as I am. And it’s going to be fine, Aunt Hannah, when it’s done.
You just wait and see!” she finished gayly, as she tripped from the
room.

Left to herself, Aunt Hannah drew a long breath.

“I’m glad she didn’t suspect,” she was thinking. “I believe she’d
consider even the _question_ disloyal to Bertram--dear child! And of
course Mary”--Aunt Hannah corrected herself with cheeks aflame--“I mean
Mr. Arkwright does--know.”

It was just here, however, that Aunt Hannah was mistaken. Mr. Arkwright
did not--know. He had not reached Boston when the engagement was
announced. He knew none of Billy’s friends in town save the Henshaw
brothers. He had not heard from Calderwell since he came to Boston. The
very evident intimacy of Billy with the Henshaw brothers he accepted as
a matter of course, knowing the history of their acquaintance, and the
fact that Billy was Mr. William Henshaw’s namesake. As to Bertram
being Billy’s lover--that idea had long ago been killed at birth by
Calderwell’s emphatic assertion that the artist would never care for any
girl--except to paint. Since coming to Boston, Arkwright had seen little
of the two together. His work, his friends, and his general mode of life
precluded that. Because of all this, therefore, Arkwright did not--know;
which was a pity--for Arkwright, and for some others.

Promptly at five o’clock that afternoon, Arkwright rang Billy’s
doorbell, and was admitted by Rosa to the living-room, where Billy was
at the piano.

Billy sprang to her feet with a joyous word of greeting.

“I’m so glad you’ve come,” she sighed happily. “I want you to hear the
melody your pretty words have sung to me. Though, maybe, after all, you
won’t like it, you know,” she finished with arch wistfulness.

“As if I could help liking it,” smiled the man, trying to keep from his
voice the ecstatic delight that the touch of her hand had brought him.

Billy shook her head and seated herself again at the piano.

“The words are lovely,” she declared, sorting out two or three sheets of
manuscript music from the quantity on the rack before her. “But there’s
one place--the rhythm, you know--if you could change it. There!--but
listen. First I’m going to play it straight through to you.” And she
dropped her fingers to the keyboard. The next moment a tenderly sweet
melody--with only a chord now and then for accompaniment--filled
Arkwright’s soul with rapture. Then Billy began to sing, very softly,
the words!

No wonder Arkwright’s soul was filled with rapture. They were his words,
wrung straight from his heart; and they were being sung by the girl
for whom they were written. They were being sung with feeling, too--so
evident a feeling that the man’s pulse quickened, and his eyes flashed a
sudden fire. Arkwright could not know, of course, that Billy, in her own
mind, was singing that song--to Bertram Henshaw.

The fire was still in Arkwright’s eyes when the song was ended; but
Billy very plainly did not see it. With a frowning sigh and a murmured
“There!” she began to talk of “rhythm” and “accent” and “cadence”; and
to point out with anxious care why three syllables instead of two were
needed at the end of a certain line. From this she passed eagerly to
the accompaniment, and Arkwright at once found himself lost in a maze
of “minor thirds” and “diminished sevenths,” until he was forced to
turn from the singer to the song. Still, watching her a little later, he
noticed her absorbed face and eager enthusiasm, her earnest pursuance of
an elusive harmony, and he wondered: did she, or did she not sing that
song with feeling a little while before?

Arkwright had not settled this question to his own satisfaction when
Aunt Hannah came in at half-past five, and he was conscious of a vague
disappointment as he rose to greet her. Billy, however, turned an
untroubled face to the newcomer.

“We’re doing finely, Aunt Hannah,” she cried. Then, suddenly, she flung
a laughing question to the man. “How about it, sir? Are we going to put
on the title-page: ‘Words by Mary Jane Arkwright’--or will you unveil
the mystery for us now?”

“Have you guessed it?” he bantered.

“No--unless it’s ‘Methuselah John.’ We did think of that the other day.”

“Wrong again!” he laughed.

“Then it’ll have to be ‘Mary Jane,’” retorted Billy, with calm
naughtiness, refusing to meet Aunt Hannah’s beseechingly reproving eyes.
Then suddenly she chuckled. “It would be a combination, wouldn’t it?
‘Words by Mary Jane Arkwright. Music by Billy Neilson’! We’d have
sighing swains writing to ‘Dear Miss Arkwright,’ telling how touching
were _her_ words; and lovelorn damsels thanking _Mr_. Neilson for _his_
soul-inspiring music!”

“Billy, my dear!” remonstrated Aunt Hannah, faintly.

“Yes, yes, I know; that was bad--and I won’t again, truly,” promised
Billy. But her eyes danced, and the next moment she had whirled about on
the piano stool and dashed into a Chopin waltz. The room itself, then,
seemed to be full of the twinkling feet of elves.



CHAPTER XVI. A GIRL AND A BIT OF LOWESTOFT


Immediately after breakfast the next morning, Billy was summoned to the
telephone.

“Oh, good morning, Uncle William,” she called, in answer to the
masculine voice that replied to her “Hullo.”

“Billy, are you very busy this morning?”

“No, indeed--not if you want me.”

“Well, I do, my dear.” Uncle William’s voice was troubled. “I want you
to go with me, if you can, to see a Mrs. Greggory. She’s got a teapot I
want. It’s a genuine Lowestoft, Harlow says. Will you go?”

“Of course I will! What time?”

“Eleven if you can, at Park Street. She’s at the West End. I don’t dare
to put it off for fear I’ll lose it. Harlow says others will have to
know of it, of course. You see, she’s just made up her mind to sell it,
and asked him to find a customer. I wouldn’t trouble you, but he says
they’re peculiar--the daughter, especially--and may need some careful
handling. That’s why I wanted you--though I wanted you to see the
tea-pot, too,--it’ll be yours some day, you know.”

Billy, all alone at her end of the line, blushed. That she was one day
to be mistress of the Strata and all it contained was still anything but
“common” to her.

“I’d love to see it, and I’ll come gladly; but I’m afraid I won’t be
much help, Uncle William,” she worried.

“I’ll take the risk of that. You see, Harlow says that about half the
time she isn’t sure she wants to sell it, after all.”

“Why, how funny! Well, I’ll come. At eleven, you say, at Park Street?”

“Yes; and thank you, my dear. I tried to get Kate to go, too; but she
wouldn’t. By the way, I’m going to bring you home to luncheon. Kate
leaves this afternoon, you know, and it’s been so snowy she hasn’t
thought best to try to get over to the house. Maybe Aunt Hannah would
come, too, for luncheon. Would she?”

“I’m afraid not,” returned Billy, with a rueful laugh. “She’s got
_three_ shawls on this morning, and you know that always means that
she’s felt a draft somewhere--poor dear. I’ll tell her, though, and I’ll
see you at eleven,” finished Billy, as she hung up the receiver.

Promptly at the appointed time Billy met Uncle William at Park Street,
and together they set out for the West End street named on the paper in
his pocket. But when the shabby house on the narrow little street was
reached, the man looked about him with a troubled frown.

“I declare, Billy, I’m not sure but we’d better turn back,” he fretted.
“I didn’t mean to take you to such a place as this.”

Billy shivered a little; but after one glance at the man’s disappointed
face she lifted a determined chin.

“Nonsense, Uncle William! Of course you won’t turn back. I don’t
mind--for myself; but only think of the people whose _homes_ are here,”
 she finished, just above her breath.

Mrs. Greggory was found to be living in two back rooms at the top of
four flights of stairs, up which William Henshaw toiled with increasing
weariness and dismay, punctuating each flight with a despairing: “Billy,
really, I think we should turn back!”

But Billy would not turn back, and at last they found themselves in the
presence of a white-haired, sweet-faced woman who said yes, she was
Mrs. Greggory; yes, she was. Even as she uttered the words, however,
she looked fearfully over her shoulders as if expecting to hear from the
hall behind them a voice denying her assertion.

Mrs. Greggory was a cripple. Her slender little body was poised on two
once-costly crutches. Both the worn places on the crutches, and the
skill with which the little woman swung herself about the room testified
that the crippled condition was not a new one.

Billy’s eyes were brimming with pity and dismay. Mechanically she had
taken the chair toward which Mrs. Greggory had motioned her. She had
tried not to seem to look about her; but there was not one detail of
the bare little room, from its faded rug to the patched but spotless
tablecloth, that was not stamped on her brain.

Mrs. Greggory had seated herself now, and William Henshaw had cleared
his throat nervously. Billy did not know whether she herself were the
more distressed or the more relieved to hear him stammer:

“We--er--I came from Harlow, Mrs. Greggory. He gave me to understand
you had an--er--teapot that--er--” With his eyes on the cracked white
crockery pitcher on the table, William Henshaw came to a helpless pause.

A curious expression, or rather, series of expressions crossed Mrs.
Greggory’s face. Terror, joy, dismay, and relief seemed, one after the
other to fight for supremacy. Relief in the end conquered, though even
yet there was a second hurriedly apprehensive glance toward the door
before she spoke.

“The Lowestoft! Yes, I’m so glad!--that is, of course I must be glad.
I’ll get it.” Her voice broke as she pulled herself from her chair.
There was only despairing sorrow on her face now.

The man rose at once.

“But, madam, perhaps--don’t let me--” I he began stammeringly. “Of
course--Billy!” he broke off in an entirely different voice. “Jove! What
a beauty!”

Mrs. Greggory had thrown open the door of a small cupboard near the
collector’s chair, disclosing on one of the shelves a beautifully shaped
teapot, creamy in tint, and exquisitely decorated in a rose design. Near
it set a tray-like plate of the same ware and decoration.

“If you’ll lift it down, please, yourself,” motioned Mrs. Greggory. “I
don’t like to--with these,” she explained, tapping the crutches at her
side.

With fingers that were almost reverent in their appreciation, the
collector reached for the teapot. His eyes sparkled.

“Billy, look, what a beauty! And it’s a Lowestoft, too, the real
thing--the genuine, true soft paste! And there’s the tray--did you
notice?” he exulted, turning back to the shelf. “You _don’t_ see that
every day! They get separated, most generally, you know.”

“These pieces have been in our family for generations,” said Mrs.
Greggory with an accent of pride. “You’ll find them quite perfect, I
think.”

“Perfect! I should say they were,” cried the man.

“They are, then--valuable?” Mrs. Greggory’s voice shook.

“Indeed they are! But you must know that.”

“I have been told so. Yet to me their chief value, of course, lies in
their association. My mother and my grandmother owned that teapot, sir.”
 Again her voice broke.

William Henshaw cleared his throat.

“But, madam, if you do not wish to sell--” He stopped abruptly. His
longing eyes had gone back to the enticing bit of china.

Mrs. Greggory gave a low cry.

“But I do--that is, I must. Mr. Harlow says that it is valuable, and
that it will bring in money; and we need--money.” She threw a quick
glance toward the hall door, though she did not pause in her remarks. “I
can’t do much at work that pays. I sew”--she nodded toward the machine
by the window--“but with only one foot to make it go--You see, the
other is--is inclined to shirk a little,” she finished with a wistful
whimsicality.

Billy turned away sharply. There was a lump in her throat and a smart in
her eyes. She was conscious suddenly of a fierce anger against--she did
not know what, exactly; but she fancied it was against the teapot,
or against Uncle William for wanting the teapot, or for _not_ wanting
it--if he did not buy it.

“And so you see, I do very much wish to sell.”

Mrs. Greggory said then. “Perhaps you will tell me what it would be
worth to you,” she concluded tremulously.

The collector’s eyes glowed. He picked up the teapot with careful
rapture and examined it. Then he turned to the tray. After a moment he
spoke.

“I have only one other in my collection as rare,” he said. “I paid a
hundred dollars for that. I shall be glad to give you the same for this,
madam.”

Mrs. Greggory started visibly.

“A hundred dollars? So much as that?” she cried almost joyously. “Why,
nothing else that we’ve had has brought--Of course, if it’s worth that
to you--” She paused suddenly. A quick step had sounded in the hall
outside. The next moment the door flew open and a young woman, who
looked to be about twenty-three or twenty-four years old, burst into the
room.

“Mother, only think, I’ve--” She stopped, and drew back a little.
Her startled eyes went from one face to another, then dropped to the
Lowestoft teapot in the man’s hands. Her expression changed at once. She
shut the door quickly and hurried forward.

“Mother, what is it? Who are these people?” she asked sharply.

Billy lifted her chin the least bit. She was conscious of a feeling
which she could not name: Billy was not used to being called “these
people” in precisely that tone of voice. William Henshaw, too, raised
his chin. He, also, was not in the habit of being referred to as “these
people.”

“My name is Henshaw, Miss--Greggory, I presume,” he said quietly. “I was
sent here by Mr. Harlow.”

“About the teapot, my dear, you know,” stammered Mrs. Greggory,
wetting her lips with an air of hurried apology and conciliation. “This
gentleman says he will be glad to buy it. Er--my daughter, Alice, Mr.
Henshaw,” she hastened on, in embarrassed introduction; “and Miss--”

“Neilson,” supplied the man, as she looked at Billy, and hesitated.

A swift red stained Alice Greggory’s face. With barely an acknowledgment
of the introductions she turned to her mother.

“Yes, dear, but that won’t be necessary now. As I started to tell you
when I came in, I have two new pupils; and so”--turning to the man again
“I thank you for your offer, but we have decided not to sell the teapot
at present.” As she finished her sentence she stepped one side as if to
make room for the strangers to reach the door.

William Henshaw frowned angrily--that was the man; but his eyes--the
collector’s eyes--sought the teapot longingly. Before either the man or
the collector could speak, however; Mrs. Greggory interposed quick words
of remonstrance.

“But, Alice, my dear,” she almost sobbed. “You didn’t wait to let me
tell you. Mr. Henshaw says it is worth a hundred dollars to him. He will
give us--a hundred dollars.”

“A hundred dollars!” echoed the girl, faintly.

It was plain to be seen that she was wavering. Billy, watching the
little scene, with mingled emotions, saw the glance with which the girl
swept the bare little room; and she knew that there was not a patch or
darn or poverty spot in sight, or out of sight, which that glance did
not encompass.

Billy was wondering which she herself desired more--that Uncle William
should buy the Lowestoft, or that he should not. She knew she wished
Mrs. Greggory to have the hundred dollars. There was no doubt on
that point. Then Uncle William spoke. His words carried the righteous
indignation of the man who thinks he has been unjustly treated, and the
final plea of the collector who sees a coveted treasure slipping from
his grasp.

“I am very sorry, of course, if my offer has annoyed you,” he said
stiffly. “I certainly should not have made it had I not had Mrs.
Greggory’s assurance that she wished to sell the teapot.”

Alice Greggory turned as if stung.

“_Wished to sell!_” She repeated the words with superb disdain. She was
plainly very angry. Her blue-gray eyes gleamed with scorn, and her whole
face was suffused with a red that had swept to the roots of her
soft hair. “Do you think a woman _wishes_ to sell a thing that she’s
treasured all her life, a thing that is perhaps the last visible
reminder of the days when she was living--not merely existing?”

“Alice, Alice, my love!” protested the sweet-faced cripple, agitatedly.

“I can’t help it,” stormed the girl, hotly. “I know how much you think
of that teapot that was grandmother’s. I know what it cost you to make
up your mind to sell it at all. And then to hear these people talk about
your _wishing_ to sell it! Perhaps they think, too, we _wish_ to live
in a place like this; that we _wish_ to have rugs that are darned,
and chairs that are broken, and garments that are patches instead of
clothes!”

“Alice!” gasped Mrs. Greggory in dismayed horror.

With a little outward fling of her two hands Alice Greggory stepped
back. Her face had grown white again.

“I beg your pardon, of course,” she said in a voice that was bitterly
quiet. “I should not have spoken so. You are very kind, Mr. Henshaw, but
I do not think we care to sell the Lowestoft to-day.”

Both words and manner were obviously a dismissal; and with a puzzled
sigh William Henshaw picked up his hat. His face showed very clearly
that he did not know what to do, or what to say; but it showed, too, as
clearly, that he longed to do something, or say something. During the
brief minute that he hesitated, however, Billy sprang forward.

“Mrs. Greggory, please, won’t you let _me_ buy the teapot? And
then--won’t you keep it for me--here? I haven’t the hundred dollars with
me, but I’ll send it right away. You will let me do it, won’t you?”

It was an impulsive speech, and a foolish one, of course, from the
standpoint of sense and logic and reasonableness; but it was one that
might be expected, perhaps, from Billy.

Mrs. Greggory must have divined, in a way, the spirit that prompted it,
for her eyes grew wet, and with a choking “Dear child!” she reached out
and caught Billy’s hand in both her own--even while she shook her head
in denial.

Not so her daughter. Alice Greggory flushed scarlet. She drew herself
proudly erect.

“Thank you,” she said with crisp coldness; “but, distasteful as darns
and patches are to us, we prefer them, infinitely, to--charity!”

“Oh, but, please, I didn’t mean--you didn’t understand,” faltered Billy.

For answer Alice Greggory walked deliberately to the door and held it
open.

“Oh, Alice, my dear,” pleaded Mrs. Greggory again, feebly.

“Come, Billy! We’ll bid you good morning, ladies,” said William
Henshaw then, decisively. And Billy, with a little wistful pat on Mrs.
Greggory’s clasped hands, went.

Once down the long four flights of stairs and out on the sidewalk,
William Henshaw drew a long breath.

“Well, by Jove! Billy, the next time I take you curio hunting, it won’t
be to this place,” he fumed.

“Wasn’t it awful!” choked Billy.

“Awful! The girl was the most stubborn, unreasonable, vixenish little
puss I ever saw. I didn’t want her old Lowestoft if she didn’t want
to sell it! But to practically invite me there, and then treat me like
that!” scolded the collector, his face growing red with anger. “Still, I
was sorry for the poor little old lady. I wish, somehow, she could have
that hundred dollars!” It was the man who said this, not the collector.

“So do I,” rejoined Billy, dolefully. “But that girl was so--so queer!”
 she sighed, with a frown. Billy was puzzled. For the first time,
perhaps, in her life, she knew what it was to have her proffered “ice
cream” disdainfully refused.



CHAPTER XVII. ONLY A LOVE SONG, BUT--


Kate and little Kate left for the West on the afternoon of
the fifteenth, and Bertram arrived from New York that evening.
Notwithstanding the confusion of all this, Billy still had time to give
some thought to her experience of the morning with Uncle William.
The forlorn little room with its poverty-stricken furnishings and its
crippled mistress was very vivid in Billy’s memory. Equally vivid were
the flashing eyes of Alice Greggory as she had opened the door at the
last.

“For,” as Billy explained to Bertram that evening, after she had told
him the story of the morning’s adventure, “you see, dear, I had never
been really _turned out_ of a house before!”

“I should think not,” scowled her lover, indignantly; “and it’s safe to
say you never will again. The impertinence of it! But then, you won’t
see them any more, sweetheart, so we’ll just forget it.”

“Forget it! Why, Bertram, I couldn’t! You couldn’t, if you’d been there.
Besides, of course I shall see them again!”

Bertram’s jaw dropped.

“Why, Billy, you don’t mean that Will, or you either, would try again
for that trumpery teapot!”

“Of course not,” flashed Billy, heatedly. “It isn’t the teapot--it’s
that dear little Mrs. Greggory. Why, dearie, you don’t know how poor
they are! Everything in sight is so old and thin and worn it’s enough to
break your heart. The rug isn’t anything but darns, nor the tablecloth,
either--except patches. It’s awful, Bertram!”

“I know, darling; but _you_ don’t expect to buy them new rugs and new
tablecloths, do you?”

Billy gave one of her unexpected laughs.

“Mercy!” she chuckled. “Only picture Miss Alice’s face if I _should_ try
to buy them rugs and tablecloths! No, dear,” she went on more seriously,
“I sha’n’t do that, of course--though I’d like to; but I shall try to
see Mrs. Greggory again, if it’s nothing more than a rose or a book or a
new magazine that I can take to her.”

“Or a smile--which I fancy will be the best gift of the lot,” amended
Bertram, fondly.

Billy dimpled and shook her head.

“Smiles--my smiles--are not so valuable, I’m afraid--except to you,
perhaps,” she laughed.

“Self-evident facts need no proving,” retorted Bertram. “Well, and what
else has happened in all these ages I’ve been away?”

Billy brought her hands together with a sudden cry.

“Oh, and I haven’t told you!” she exclaimed. “I’m writing a new song--a
love song. Mary Jane wrote the words. They’re beautiful.”

Bertram stiffened.

“Indeed! And is--Mary Jane a poet, with all the rest?” he asked, with
affected lightness.

“Oh, no, of course not,” smiled Billy; “but these words _are_ pretty.
And they just sang themselves into the dearest little melody right away.
So I’m writing the music for them.”

“Lucky Mary Jane!” murmured Bertram, still with a lightness that he
hoped would pass for indifference. (Bertram was ashamed of himself, but
deep within him was a growing consciousness that he knew the meaning
of the vague irritation that he always felt at the mere mention of
Arkwright’s name.) “And will the title-page say, ‘Words by Mary Jane
Arkwright’?” he finished.

“That’s what I asked him,” laughed Billy.


“I even suggested ‘Methuselah John’ for a change. Oh, but, dearie,” she
broke off with shy eagerness, “I just want you to hear a little of what
I’ve done with it. You see, really, all the time, I suspect, I’ve been
singing it--to you,” she confessed with an endearing blush, as she
sprang lightly to her feet and hurried to the piano.

It was a bad ten minutes that Bertram Henshaw spent then. How he could
love a song and hate it at the same time he did not understand; but he
knew that he was doing exactly that. To hear Billy carol “Sweetheart, my
sweetheart!” with that joyous tenderness was bliss unspeakable--until he
remembered that Arkwright wrote the “Sweetheart, my sweetheart!” then it
was--(Even in his thoughts Bertram bit the word off short. He was not a
swearing man.) When he looked at Billy now at the piano, and thought of
her singing--as she said she had sung--that song to him all through the
last three days, his heart glowed. But when he looked at her and thought
of Arkwright, who had made possible that singing, his heart froze with
terror.

From the very first it had been music that Bertram had feared. He could
not forget that Billy herself had once told him that never would she
love any man better than she loved her music; that she was not going
to marry. All this had been at the first--the very first. He had boldly
scorned the idea then, and had said:

“So it’s music--a cold, senseless thing of spidery marks on clean white
paper--that is my only rival!”

He had said, too, that he was going to win. And he had won--but
not until after long weeks of fearing, hoping, striving, and
despairing--this last when Kate’s blundering had nearly made her
William’s wife. Then, on that memorable day in September, Billy had
walked straight into his arms; and he knew that he had, indeed, won.
That is, he had supposed that he knew--until Arkwright came.

Very sharply now, as he listened to Billy’s singing, Bertram told
himself to be reasonable, to be sensible; that Billy did, indeed, love
him. Was she not, according to her own dear assertion, singing that song
to him? But it was Arkwright’s song. He remembered that, too--and grew
faint at the thought. True, he had won when his rival, music, had been
a “cold, senseless thing of spidery marks” on paper; but would that
winning stand when “music” had become a thing of flesh and blood--a man
of undeniable charm, good looks, and winsomeness; a man whose thoughts,
aims, and words were the personification of the thing Billy, in the long
ago, had declared she loved best of all--music?

Bertram shivered as with a sudden chill; then Billy rose from the piano.

“There!” she breathed, her face shyly radiant with the glory of the
song. “Did you--like it?”

Bertram did his best; but, in his state of mind, the very radiance of
her face was only an added torture, and his tongue stumbled over the
words of praise and appreciation that he tried to say. He saw, then, the
happy light in Billy’s eyes change to troubled questioning and grieved
disappointment; and he hated himself for a jealous brute. More earnestly
than ever, now, he tried to force the ring of sincerity into his voice;
but he knew that he had miserably failed when he heard her falter:

“Of course, dear, I--I haven’t got it nearly perfected yet. It’ll be
much better, later.”

“But it s{sic} fine, now, sweetheart--indeed it is,” protested Bertram,
hurriedly.

“Well, of course I’m glad--if you like it,” murmured Billy; but the glow
did not come back to her face.



CHAPTER XVIII. SUGARPLUMS


Those short December days after Bertram’s return from New York were busy
ones for everybody. Miss Winthrop was not in town to give sittings for
her portrait, it is true; but her absence only afforded Bertram time and
opportunity to attend to other work that had been more or less delayed
and neglected. He was often at Hillside, however, and the lovers managed
to snatch many an hour of quiet happiness from the rush and confusion of
the Christmas preparations.

Bertram was assuring himself now that his jealous fears of Arkwright
were groundless. Billy seldom mentioned the man, and, as the days
passed, she spoke only once of his being at the house. The song, too,
she said little of; and Bertram--though he was ashamed to own it to
himself--breathed more freely.

The real facts of the case were that Billy had told Arkwright that she
should have no time to give attention to the song until after Christmas;
and her manner had so plainly shown him that she considered himself
synonymous with the song, that he had reluctantly taken the hint and
kept away.

“I’ll make her care for me sometime--for something besides a song,” he
told himself with fierce consolation--but Billy did not know this.

Aside from Bertram, Christmas filled all of Billy’s thoughts these days.
There were such a lot of things she wished to do.

“But, after all, they’re only sugarplums, you know, that I’m giving,
dear,” she declared to Bertram one day, when he had remonstrated with
with her for so taxing her time and strength. “I can’t really do much.”

“Much!” scoffed Bertram.

“But it isn’t much, honestly--compared to what there is to do,” argued
Billy. “You see, dear, it’s just this,” she went on, her bright face
sobering a little. “There are such a lot of people in the world who
aren’t really poor. That is, they have bread, and probably meat, to eat,
and enough clothes to keep them warm. But when you’ve said that, you’ve
said it all. Books, music, fun, and frosting on their cake they know
nothing about--except to long for them.”

“But there are the churches and the charities, and all those long-named
Societies--I thought that was what they were for,” declared Bertram,
still a little aggrievedly, his worried eyes on Billy’s tired face.

“Oh, but the churches and charities don’t frost cakes nor give
sugarplums,” smiled Billy. “And it’s right that they shouldn’t, too,”
 she added quickly. “They have more than they can do now with the roast
beef and coal and flannel petticoats that are really necessary.”

“And so it’s just frosting and sugarplums, is it--these books and
magazines and concert tickets and lace collars for the crippled boy, the
spinster lady, the little widow, and all the rest of those people who
were here last summer?”

Billy turned in confused surprise.

“Why, Bertram, however in the world did you find out about all--that?”

“I didn’t. I just guessed it--and it seems ‘the boy guessed right the
very first time,’” laughed Bertram, teasingly, but with a tender light
in his eyes. “Oh, and I suppose you’ll be sending a frosted cake to the
Lowestoft lady, too, eh?”

Billy’s chin rose to a defiant stubbornness.

“I’m going to try to--if I can find out what kind of frosting she
likes.”

“How about the Alice lady--or perhaps I should say, the Lady Alice?”
 smiled the man.

Billy relaxed visibly.

“Yes, I know,” she sighed. “There is--the Lady Alice. But, anyhow, she
can’t call a Christmas present ‘charity’--not if it’s only a little bit
of frosting!” Billy’s chin came up again.

“And you’re going to, really, dare to send her something?”

“Yes,” avowed Billy. “I’m going down there one of these days, in the
morning--”

“You’re going down there! Billy--not alone?”

“Yes. Why not?”

“But, dearie, you mustn’t. It was a horrid place, Will says.”

“So it was horrid--to live in. It was everything that was cheap and mean
and forlorn. But it was quiet and respectable. ‘Tisn’t as if I didn’t
know the way, Bertram; and I’m sure that where that poor crippled woman
and daughter are safe, I shall be. Mrs. Greggory is a lady, Bertram,
well-born and well-bred, I’m sure--and that’s the pity of it, to have
to live in a place like that! They have seen better days, I know. Those
pitiful little worn crutches of hers were mahogany, I’m sure, Bertram,
and they were silver mounted.”

Bertram made a restless movement.

“I know, dear; but if you had some one with you! It wouldn’t do for
Will, of course, nor me--under the circumstances. But there’s Aunt
Hannah--” He paused hopefully.

Billy chuckled.

“Bless your dear heart! Aunt Hannah would call for a dozen shawls in
that place--if she had breath enough to call for any after she got to
the top of those four flights!”

“Yes, I suppose so,” rejoined Bertram, with an unwilling smile.
“Still--well, you _can_ take Rosa,” he concluded decisively.

“How Miss Alice would like that--to catch me going ‘slumming’ with
my maid!” cried Billy, righteous indignation in her voice. “Honestly,
Bertram, I think even gentle Mrs. Greggory wouldn’t stand for that.”

“Then leave Rosa outside in the hall,” planned Bertram, promptly; and
after a few more arguments, Billy finally agreed to this.

It was with Rosa, therefore, that she set out the next morning for the
little room up four flights on the narrow West End street.

Leaving the maid on the top stair of the fourth flight, Billy tapped
at Mrs. Greggory’s door. To her joy Mrs. Greggory herself answered the
knock.

“Oh! Why--why, good morning,” murmured the lady, in evident
embarrassment. “Won’t you--come m?”

“Thank you. May I?--just a minute?” smiled Billy, brightly.

As she entered the room, Billy threw a hasty look about her. There was
no one but themselves present. With a sigh of satisfaction, therefore,
the girl took the chair Mrs. Greggory offered, and began to speak.

“I was down this way--that is, I came this way this morning,” she began
a little hastily; “and I wanted just to come up and tell you how sorry
I was about--about that teapot the other day. We didn’t want it, of
course--if you didn’t want us to have it.”

A swift change crossed Mrs. Greggory’s perturbed face.

“Oh, then you didn’t come for it again--to-day,” she said. “I’m so glad!
I didn’t want to refuse--_you_.”

“Indeed I didn’t come for it--and we sha’n’t again. Don’t worry about
that, please.”

Mrs. Greggory sighed.

“I’m afraid you thought me very rude and--and impossible the other day,”
 she stammered. “And please let me take this opportunity right now to
apologize for my daughter. She was overwrought and excited. She didn’t
know what she was saying or doing, I’m sure. She was ashamed, I think
after you left.”

Billy raised a quick hand of protest.

“Don’t, please don’t, Mrs. Greggory,” she begged.

“But it was our fault that you came. We _asked_ you to come--through Mr.
Harlow,” rejoined the other, hurriedly. “And Mr. Henshaw--was that his
name?--was so kind in every way. I’m glad of this chance to tell you how
much we really did appreciate it--and _your_ offer, too, which we could
not, of course, accept,” she finished, the bright color flooding her
delicate face.

Again Billy raised a protesting hand; but the little woman in the
opposite chair hurried on. There was still more, evidently, that she
wished to say.

“I hope Mr. Henshaw did not feel too disappointed--about the Lowestoft.
We didn’t want to let it go if we could help it; and we hope now to keep
it.”

“Of course,” murmured Billy, sympathetically.

“My daughter knew, you see, how much I have always thought of it, and
she was determined that I should not give it up. She said I should
have that much left, anyway. You see--my daughter is very unreconciled,
still, to things as they are; and no wonder, perhaps. They are so
different--from what they were!” Her voice broke a little.

“Of course,” said Billy again, and this time the words were tinged with
impatient indignation. “If only there were something one could do to
help!”

“Thank you, my dear, but there isn’t--indeed there isn’t,” rejoined
the other, quickly; and Billy, looking into the proudly lifted face,
realized suddenly that daughter Alice had perhaps inherited some traits
from mother. “We shall get along very well, I am sure. My daughter
has still another pupil. She will be home soon to tell you herself,
perhaps.”

Billy rose with a haste so marked it was almost impolite, as she
murmured:

“Will she? I’m afraid, though, that I sha’n’t see her, after all, for I
must go. And may I leave these, please?” she added, hurriedly unpinning
the bunch of white carnations from her coat. “It seems a pity to let
them wilt, when you can put them in water right here.” Her studiously
casual voice gave no hint that those particular pinks had been bought
less than half an hour before of a Park Street florist so that Mrs.
Greggory _might_ put them in water--right there.

“Oh, oh, how lovely!” breathed Mrs. Greggory, her face deep in the
feathery bed of sweetness. Before she could half say “Thank you,”
 however? she found herself alone.



CHAPTER XIX. ALICE GREGGORY


Christmas came and went; and in a flurry of snow and sleet January
arrived. The holidays over, matters and things seemed to settle down to
the winter routine.

Miss Winthrop had prolonged her visit in Washington until after
Christmas, but she had returned to Boston now--and with her she had
brought a brand-new idea for her portrait; an idea that caused her to
sweep aside with superb disdain all poses and costumes and sketches to
date, and announce herself with disarming winsomeness as “all ready now
to really begin!”

Bertram Henshaw was vexed, but helpless. Decidedly he wished to paint
Miss Marguerite Winthrop’s portrait; but to attempt to paint it when all
matters were not to the lady’s liking were worse than useless, unless
he wished to hang this portrait in the gallery of failures along with
Anderson’s and Fullam’s--and that was not the goal he had set for it. As
to the sordid money part of the affair--the great J. G. Winthrop himself
had come to the artist, and in one terse sentence had doubled the
original price and expressed himself as hopeful that Henshaw would put
up with “the child’s notions.” It was the old financier’s next sentence,
however, that put the zest of real determination into Bertram, for
because of it, the artist saw what this portrait was going to mean to
the stern old man, and how dear was the original of it to a heart that
was commonly reported “on the street” to be made of stone.

Obviously, then, indeed, there was nothing for Bertram Henshaw to do
but to begin the new portrait. And he began it--though still, it must be
confessed, with inward questionings. Before a week had passed, however,
every trace of irritation had fled, and he was once again the absorbed
artist who sees the vision of his desire taking palpable shape at the
end of his brush.

“It’s all right,” he said to Billy then, one evening. “I’m glad she
changed. It’s going to be the best, the very best thing I’ve ever
done--I think! by the sketches.”

“I’m so glad!” exclaimed Billy. “I’m so glad!” The repetition was
so vehement that it sounded almost as if she were trying to convince
herself as well as Bertram of something that was not true.

But it was true--Billy told herself very indignantly that it was; indeed
it was! Yet the very fact that she had to tell herself this, caused her
to know how perilously near she was to being actually jealous of that
portrait of Marguerite Winthrop. And it shamed her.

Very sternly these days Billy reminded herself of what Kate had
said about Bertram’s belonging first to his Art. She thought with
mortification, too, that it _did_ look as if she were not the proper
wife for an artist if she were going to feel like this--always. Very
resolutely, then, Billy turned to her music. This was all the more
easily done, for, not only did she have her usual concerts and the opera
to enjoy, but she had become interested in an operetta her club was
about to give; also she had taken up the new song again. Christmas being
over, Mr. Arkwright had been to the house several times. He had changed
some of the words and she had improved the melody. The work on the
accompaniment was progressing finely now, and Billy was so glad!--when
she was absorbed in her music she forgot sometimes that she was ever so
unfit an artist’s sweetheart as to be--jealous of a portrait.

It was quite early in the month that the usually expected “January thaw”
 came, and it was on a comparatively mild Friday at this time that a
matter of business took Billy into the neighborhood of Symphony Hall at
about eleven o’clock in the morning. Dismissing John and the car upon
her arrival, she said that she would later walk to the home of a friend
near by, where she would remain until it was time for the Symphony
Concert.

This friend was a girl whom Billy had known at school. She was studying
now at the Conservatory of Music; and she had often urged Billy to come
and have luncheon with her in her tiny apartment, which she shared with
three other girls and a widowed aunt for housekeeper. On this particular
Friday it had occurred to Billy that, owing to her business appointment
at eleven and the Symphony Concert at half-past two, the intervening
time would give her just the opportunity she had been seeking to
enable her to accept her friend’s invitation. A question asked, and
enthusiastically answered in the affirmative, over the telephone that
morning, therefore, had speedily completed arrangements, and she had
agreed to be at her friend’s door by twelve o’clock, or before.

As it happened, business did not take quite so long as she had expected,
and half-past eleven found her well on her way to Miss Henderson’s home.

In spite of the warm sunshine and the slushy snow in the streets, there
was a cold, raw wind, and Billy was beginning to feel thankful that she
had not far to go when she rounded a corner and came upon a long line of
humanity that curved itself back and forth on the wide expanse of steps
before Symphony Hall and then stretched itself far up the Avenue.

“Why, what--” she began under her breath; then suddenly she understood.
It was Friday. A world-famous pianist was to play with the Symphony
Orchestra that afternoon. This must be the line of patient waiters for
the twenty-five-cent balcony seats that Mr. Arkwright had told about.
With sympathetic, interested eyes, then, Billy stepped one side to watch
the line, for a moment.

Almost at once two girls brushed by her, and one was saying:

“What a shame!--and after all our struggles to get here! If only we
hadn’t lost that other train!”

“We’re too late--you no need to hurry!” the other wailed shrilly to a
third girl who was hastening toward them. “The line is ‘way beyond
the Children’s Hospital and around the corner now--and the ones there
_never_ get in!”

At the look of tragic disappointment that crossed the third girl’s face,
Billy’s heart ached. Her first impulse, of course, was to pull her
own symphony ticket from her muff and hurry forward with a “Here, take
mine!” But that _would_ hardly do, she knew--though she would like to
see Aunt Hannah’s aghast face if this girl in the red sweater and white
tam-o’-shanter should suddenly emerge from among the sumptuous satins
and furs and plumes that afternoon and claim the adjacent orchestra
chair. But it was out of the question, of course. There was only one
seat, and there were three girls, besides all those others. With a sigh,
then, Billy turned her eyes back to those others--those many others that
made up the long line stretching its weary length up the Avenue.

There were more women than men, yet the men were there: jolly young men
who were plainly students; older men whose refined faces and threadbare
overcoats hinted at cultured minds and starved bodies; other men who
showed no hollows in their cheeks nor near-holes in their garments. It
seemed to Billy that women of almost all sorts were there, young, old,
and middle-aged; students in tailored suits, widows in crape and veil;
girls that were members of a merry party, women that were plainly
forlorn and alone.

Some in the line shuffled restlessly; some stood rigidly quiet. One had
brought a camp stool; many were seated on the steps. Beyond, where the
line passed an open lot, a wooden fence afforded a convenient prop. One
read a book, another a paper. Three were studying what was probably
the score of the symphony or of the concerto they expected to hear that
afternoon.

A few did not appear to mind the biting wind, but most of them, by
turned-up coat-collars or bent heads, testified to the contrary. Not
far from Billy a woman nibbled a sandwich furtively, while beyond her a
group of girls were hilariously merry over four triangles of pie which
they held up where all might see.

Many of the faces were youthful, happy, and alert with anticipation;
but others carried a wistfulness and a weariness that made Billy’s heart
ache. Her eyes, indeed, filled with quick tears. Later she turned to go,
and it was then that she saw in the line a face that she knew--a face
that drooped with such a white misery of spent strength that she hurried
straight toward it with a low cry.

“Miss Greggory!” she exclaimed, when she reached the girl. “You look
actually ill. Are you ill?”

For a brief second only dazed questioning stared from the girl’s
blue-gray eyes. Billy knew when the recognition came, for she saw the
painful color stain the white face red.

“Thank you, no. I am not ill, Miss Neilson,” said the girl, coldly.

“But you look so tired out!”

“I have been standing here some time; that is all.”

Billy threw a hurried glance down the far-reaching line that she
knew had formed since the girl’s two tired feet had taken their first
position.

“But you must have come--so early! It isn’t twelve o’clock yet,” she
faltered.

A slight smile curved Alice Greggory’s lips.

“Yes, it was early,” she rejoined a little bitterly; “but it had to be,
you know. I wanted to hear the music; and with this soloist, and this
weather, I knew that many others--would want to hear the music, too.”

“But you look so white! How much longer--when will they let you in?”
 demanded Billy, raising indignant eyes to the huge, gray-pillared
building before her, much as if she would pull down the walls if she
could, and make way for this tired girl at her side.

Miss Greggory’s thin shoulders rose and fell in an expressive shrug.

“Half-past one.”

Billy gave a dismayed cry.

“Half-past one--almost two hours more! But, Miss Greggory, you
can’t--how can you stand it till then? You’ve shivered three times since
I came, and you look as if you were going to faint away.”

Miss Greggory shook her head.

“It is nothing, really,” she insisted. “I am quite well. It is only--I
didn’t happen to feel like eating much breakfast this morning; and that,
with no luncheon--” She let a gesture finish her sentence.

“No luncheon! Why--oh, you couldn’t leave your place, of course,”
 frowned Billy.

“No, and”--Alice Greggory lifted her head a little proudly--“I do not
care to eat--here.” Her scornful eyes were on one of the pieces of pie
down the line--no longer a triangle.

“Of course not,” agreed Billy, promptly. She paused, frowned, and
bit her lip. Suddenly her face cleared. “There! the very thing,” she
exulted. “You shall have my ticket this afternoon, Miss Greggory, then
you won’t have to stay here another minute. Meanwhile, there is an
excellent restaurant--”

“Thank you--no. I couldn’t do that,” cut in the other, sharply, but in a
low voice.

“But you’ll take my ticket,” begged Billy.

Miss Greggory shook her head.

“Certainly not.”

“But I want you to, please. I shall be very unhappy if you don’t,”
 grieved Billy.

The other made a peremptory gesture.

“_I_ should be very unhappy if I did,” she said with cold emphasis.
“Really, Miss Neilson,” she went on in a low voice, throwing an
apprehensive glance at the man ahead, who was apparently absorbed in his
newspaper, “I’m afraid I shall have to ask you to let me go on in my own
way. You are very kind, but there is nothing you can do; nothing. You
were very kind, too, of course, to send the book and the flowers to
mother at Christmas; but--”

“Never mind that, please,” interrupted Billy, hurriedly. Billy’s head
was lifted now. Her eyes were no longer pleading. Her round little chin
looked square and determined. “If you simply will not take my ticket
this afternoon, you _must_ do this. Go to some restaurant near here and
get a good luncheon--something that will sustain you. I will take your
place here.”

“_Miss Neilson!_”

Billy smiled radiantly. It was the first time she had ever seen
Alice Greggory’s haughtily cold reserve break into anything like
naturalness--the astonished incredulity of that “Miss Neilson!” was
plainly straight from the heart; so, too, were the amazed words that
followed.

“_You_--will stand _here?_”

“Certainly; I will keep your place. Don’t worry. You sha’n’t lose it.”
 Billy spoke with a smiling indifference that was meant to convey the
impression that standing in line for a twenty-five-cent seat was a
daily habit of hers. “There’s a restaurant only a little way--right down
there,” she finished. And before the dazed Alice Greggory knew quite
what was happening she found herself outside the line, and the other in
her place.

“But, Miss Neilson, I can’t--you mustn’t--” she stammered; then, because
of something in the unyieldingness of the square young chin above the
sealskin coat, and because she could not (she knew) use actual force
to drag the owner of that chin out of the line, she bowed her head in
acquiescence.

“Well, then--I will, long enough for some coffee and maybe a sandwich.
And--thank you,” she choked, as she turned and hurried away.

Billy drew the deep breath of one who has triumphed after long
struggles--but the breath broke off short in a gasp of dismay: coming
straight up the Avenue toward her was the one person in the world Billy
wished least to see at that moment--Bertram Henshaw. Billy remembered
then that she had twice lately heard her lover speak of calling at the
Boston Opera House concerning a commission to paint an ideal head to
represent “Music” for some decorative purpose. The Opera House was only
a short distance up the Avenue. Doubtless he was on his way there now.

He was very near by this time, and Billy held her breath suspended.
There was a chance, of course, that he might not notice her; and Billy
was counting on that chance--until a gust of wind whirled a loose
half-sheet of newspaper from the hands of the man in front of her, and
naturally attracted Bertram’s eyes to its vicinity--and to hers. The
next moment he was at her side and his dumfounded but softly-breathed
“_Billy!_” was in her ears.

Billy bubbled into low laughter--there were such a lot of funny
situations in the world, and of them all this one was about the
drollest, she thought.

“Yes, I know,” she gurgled. “You don’t have to say it-your face is
saying even more than your tongue _could!_ This is just for a girl I
know. I’m keeping her place.”

Bertram frowned. He looked as if he were meditating picking Billy up and
walking off with her.

“But, Billy,” he protested just above his breath, “this isn’t sugarplums
nor frosting; it’s plain suicide--standing out in this wind like
this! Besides--” He stopped with an angrily despairing glance at her
surroundings.

“Yes, I know,” she nodded, a little soberly, understanding the look and
answering that first; “it isn’t pleasant nor comfortable, in lots of
ways--but _she’s_ had it all the morning. As for the cold--I’m as warm
as toast. It won’t be long, anyway; she’s just gone to get something to
eat. Then I’m going to May Henderson’s for luncheon.”

Bertram sighed impatiently and opened his lips--only to close them with
the words unsaid. There was nothing he could do, and he had already said
too much, he thought, with a savage glance at the man ahead who still
had enough of his paper left to serve for a pretence at reading. As
Bertram could see, however, the man was not reading a word--he was too
acutely conscious of the handsome young woman in the long sealskin
coat behind him. Billy was already the cynosure of dozens of eyes, and
Bertram knew that his own arrival on the scene had not lessened the
interest of the owners of those eyes. He only hoped devoutly that no
one in the line knew him ar Billy, and that no one quite knew what had
happened. He did not wish to see himself and his fiancée the subject
of inch-high headlines in some evening paper figuring as:

“Talented young composer and her famous artist lover take poor girl’s
place in a twenty-five-cent ticket line.”

He shivered at the thought.

“Are you cold?” worried Billy. “If you are, don’t stand here, please!”

He shook his head silently. His eyes were searching the street for the
only one whose coming could bring him relief.

It must have been but a coffee-and-sandwich luncheon for the girl, for
soon she came. The man surmised that it was she, as soon as he saw her,
and stepped back at once. He had no wish for introductions. A moment
later the girl was in Billy’s place, and Billy herself was at his side.

“That was Alice Greggory, Bertram,” she told him, as they walked on
swiftly; “and Bertram, she was actually almost _crying_ when she took my
place.”

“Humph! Well, I should think she’d better be,” growled Bertram,
perversely.

“Pooh! It didn’t hurt me any, dearie,” laughed Billy with a conciliatory
pat on his arm as they turned down the street upon which her friend
lived. “And now can you come in and see May a minute?”

“I’m afraid not,” regretted Bertram. “I wish I could, but I’m busier
than busy to-day--and I was _supposed_ to be already late when I saw
you. Jove, Billy, I just couldn’t believe my eyes!”

“You looked it,” twinkled Billy. “It was worth a farm just to see your
face!”

“I’d want the farm--if I was going through that again,” retorted the
man, grimly--Bertram was still seeing that newspaper heading.

But Billy only laughed again.



CHAPTER XX. ARKWRIGHT TELLS A STORY


Arkwright called Monday afternoon by appointment; and together he and
Billy put the finishing touches to the new song.

It was when, with Aunt Hannah, they were having tea before the fire
a little later, that Billy told of her adventure the preceding Friday
afternoon in front of Symphony Hall.

“You knew the girl, of course--I think you said you knew the girl,”
 ventured Arkwright.

“Oh, yes. She was Alice Greggory. I met her with Uncle William first,
over a Lowestoft teapot. Maybe you’d like to know _how_ I met her,”
 smiled Billy.

“Alice Greggory?” Arkwright’s eyes showed a sudden interest. “I used to
know an Alice Greggory, but it isn’t the same one, probably. Her mother
was a cripple.”

Billy gave a little cry.

“Why, it is--it must be! _My_ Alice Greggory’s mother is a cripple. Oh,
do you know them, really?”

“Well, it does look like it,” rejoined Arkwright, showing even deeper
interest. “I haven’t seen them for four or five years. They used to live
in our town. The mother was a little sweet-faced woman with young eyes
and prematurely white hair.”

“That describes my Mrs. Greggory exactly,” cried Billy’s eager voice.
“And the daughter?”

“Alice? Why--as I said, it’s been four years since I’ve seen her.” A
touch of constraint had come into Arkwright’s voice which Billy’s keen
ear was quick to detect. “She was nineteen then and very pretty.”

“About my height, and with light-brown hair and big blue-gray eyes that
look steely cold when she’s angry?” questioned Billy.

“I reckon that’s about it,” acknowledged the man, with a faint smile.

“Then they _are_ the ones,” declared the girl, plainly excited. “Isn’t
that splendid? Now we can know them, and perhaps do something for
them. I love that dear little mother already, and I think I should the
daughter--if she didn’t put out so many prickers that I couldn’t get
near her! But tell us about them. How did they come here? Why didn’t you
know they were here?”

“Are you good at answering a dozen questions at once?” asked Aunt
Hannah, turning smiling eyes from Billy to the man at her side.

“Well, I can try,” he offered. “To begin with, they are Judge Greggory’s
widow and daughter. They belong to fine families on both sides, and they
used to be well off--really wealthy, for a small town. But the judge was
better at money-making than he was at money-keeping, and when he came to
die his income stopped, of course, and his estate was found to be in bad
shape through reckless loans and worthless investments. That was eight
years ago. Things went from bad to worse then, until there was almost
nothing left.”

“I knew there was some such story as that back of them,” declared Billy.
“But how do you suppose they came here?”

“To get away from--everybody, I suspect,” replied Arkwright. “That would
be like them. They were very proud; and it isn’t easy, you know, to be
nobody where you’ve been somebody. It doesn’t hurt quite so hard--to be
nobody where you’ve never been anything but nobody.”

“I suppose so,” sighed Billy. “Still--they must have had friends.”

“They did, of course; but when the love of one’s friends becomes _too_
highly seasoned with pity, it doesn’t make a pleasant morsel to swallow,
specially if you don’t like the taste of the pity--and there are people
who don’t, you know. The Greggorys were that kind. They were morbidly
so. From their cheap little cottage, where they did their own work, they
stepped out in their shabby garments and old-fashioned hats with heads
even more proudly erect than in the old days when their home and their
gowns and their doings were the admiration and envy of the town. You
see, they didn’t want--that pity.”

“I _do_ see,” cried Billy, her face aglow with sudden understanding;
“and I don’t believe pity would be--nice!” Her own chin was held high as
she spoke.

“It must have been hard, indeed,” murmured Aunt Hannah with a sigh, as
she set down her teacup.

“It was,” nodded Arkwright. “Of course Mrs. Greggory, with her crippled
foot, could do nothing to bring in any money except to sew a little. It
all depended on Alice; and when matters got to their worst she began
to teach. She was fond of music, and could play the piano well; and of
course she had had the best instruction she could get from city teachers
only twenty miles away from our home town. Young as she was--about
seventeen when she began to teach, I think--she got a few beginners
right away, and in two years she had worked up quite a class, meanwhile
keeping on with her own studies, herself.

“They might have carried the thing through, maybe,” continued Arkwright,
“and never _apparently_ known that the ‘pity’ existed, if it hadn’t been
for some ugly rumors that suddenly arose attacking the Judge’s honesty
in an old matter that somebody raked up. That was too much. Under this
last straw their courage broke utterly. Alice dismissed every pupil,
sold almost all their remaining goods--they had lots of quite valuable
heirlooms; I suspect that’s where your Lowestoft teapot came in--and
with the money thus gained they left town. Until they could go, they
scarcely showed themselves once on the street, they were never at home
to callers, and they left without telling one soul where they were
going, so far as we could ever learn.”

“Why, the poor dears!” cried Billy. “How they must have suffered! But
things will be different now. You’ll go to see them, of course, and--”
 At the look that came into Arkwright’s face, she stopped in surprise.

“You forget; they wouldn’t wish to see me,” demurred the man. And again
Billy noticed the odd constraint in his voice.

“But they wouldn’t mind _you--here_,” argued Billy.

“I’m afraid they would. In fact, I’m sure they’d refuse entirely to see
me.”

Billy’s eyes grew determined.

“But they can’t refuse--if I bring about a meeting just casually, you
know,” she challenged.

Arkwright laughed.

“Well, I won’t pretend to say as to the consequences of that,” he
rejoined, rising to his feet; “but they might be disastrous. Wasn’t it
you yourself who were telling me a few minutes ago how steely cold Miss
Alice’s eyes got when she was angry?”

Billy knew by the way the man spoke that, for some reason, he did not
wish to prolong the subject of his meeting the Greggorys. She made a
quick shift, therefore, to another phase of the matter.

“But tell me, please, before you go, how did those rumors come
out--about Judge Greggory’s honesty, I mean?”

“Why, I never knew, exactly,” frowned Arkwright, musingly. “Yet it
seems, too, that mother did say in one letter, while I was in Paris,
that some of the accusations had been found to be false, and that there
was a prospect that the Judge’s good name might be saved, after all.”

“Oh, I wish it might,” sighed Billy. “Think what it would mean to those
women!”

“‘Twould mean everything,” cried Arkwright, warmly; “and I’ll write
to mother to-night, I will, and find out just what there is to it-if
anything. Then you can tell them,” he finished a little stiffly.

“Yes--or you,” nodded Billy, lightly. And because she began at once to
speak of something else, the first part of her sentence passed without
comment.

The door had scarcely closed behind Arkwright when Billy turned to Aunt
Hannah a beaming face.

“Aunt Hannah, did you notice?” she cried, “how Mary Jane looked and
acted whenever Alice Greggory was spoken of? There was something between
them--I’m sure there was; and they quarrelled, probably.”

“Why, no, dear; I didn’t see anything unusual,” murmured the elder lady.

“Well, I did. And I’m going to be the fairy godmother that straightens
everything all out, too. See if I’m not! They’d make a splendid couple,
Aunt Hannah. I’m going right down there to-morrow.”

“Billy, my dear!” exclaimed the more conservative old lady, “aren’t
you taking things a little too much for granted? Maybe they don’t wish
for--for a fairy godmother!”

“Oh, _they_ won’t know I’m a fairy godmother--not one of them; and of
course I wouldn’t mention even a hint to anybody,” laughed Billy. “I’m
just going down to get acquainted with the Greggorys; that’s all. Only
think, Aunt Hannah, what they must have suffered! And look at the place
they’re living in now--gentlewomen like them!”

“Yes, yes, poor things, poor things!” sighed Aunt Hannah.

“I hope I’ll find out that she’s really good--at teaching, I mean--the
daughter,” resumed Billy, after a moment’s pause. “If she is, there’s
one thing I can do to help, anyhow. I can get some of Marie’s old pupils
for her. I _know_ some of them haven’t begun with a new teacher, yet;
and Mrs. Carleton told me last Friday that neither she nor her sister
was at all satisfied with the one their girls _have_ taken. They’d
change, I know, in a minute, at my recommendation--that is, of course,
if I can _give_ the recommendation,” continued Billy, with a troubled
frown. “Anyhow, I’m going down to begin operations to-morrow.”



CHAPTER XXI. A MATTER OF STRAIGHT BUSINESS


True to her assertion, Billy went down to the Greggorys’ the next day.
This time she did not take Rosa with her. Even Aunt Hannah conceded that
it would not be necessary. She had not been gone ten minutes, however,
when the telephone bell rang, and Rosa came to say that Mr. Bertram
Henshaw wanted to speak with Mrs. Stetson.

“Rosa says that Billy’s not there,” called Bertram’s aggrieved voice,
when Aunt Hannah had said, “Good morning, my boy.”

“Dear me, no, Bertram. She’s in a fever of excitement this morning.
She’ll probably tell you all about it when you come out here to-night.
You _are_ coming out to-night, aren’t you?”

“Yes; oh, yes! But what is it? Where’s she gone?”

Aunt Hannah laughed softly.

“Well, she’s gone down to the Greggorys’.”

“The Greggorys’! What--again?”

“Oh, you might as well get used to it, Bertram,” bantered Aunt Hannah,
“for there’ll be a good many ‘agains,’ I fancy.”

“Why, Aunt Hannah, what do you mean?” Bertram’s voice was not quite
pleased.

“Oh, she’ll tell you. It’s only that the Greggorys have turned out to be
old friends of Mr. Arkwright’s.”

“_Friends_ of Arkwright’s!” Bertram’s voice was decidedly displeased
now.

“Yes; and there’s quite a story to it all, as well. Billy is wildly
excited, as you’d know she would be. You’ll hear all about it to-night,
of course.”

“Yes, of course,” echoed Bertram. But there was no ring of enthusiasm in
his voice, neither then, nor when he said good-by a moment later.

Billy, meanwhile, on her way to the Greggory home, was, as Aunt Hannah
had said, “wildly excited.” It seemed so strange and wonderful and
delightful--the whole affair: that she should have found them because
of a Lowestoft teapot, that Arkwright should know them, and that there
should be the chance now that she might help them--in some way; though
this last, she knew, could be accomplished only through the exercise of
the greatest tact and delicacy. She had not forgotten that Arkwright had
told her of their hatred of pity.

In the sober second thought of the morning, Billy was not sure now of a
possible romance in connection with Arkwright and the daughter, Alice;
but she had by no means abandoned the idea, and she meant to keep
her eyes open--and if there should be a chance to bring such a thing
about--! Meanwhile, of course, she should not mention the matter, even
to Bertram.

Just what would be her method of procedure this first morning, Billy had
not determined. The pretty potted azalea in her hand would be excuse for
her entrance into the room. After that, circumstances must decide for
themselves.

Mrs. Greggory was found to be alone at home as before, and Billy was
glad. She would rather begin with one than two, she thought. The little
woman greeted her cordially, gave misty-eyed thanks for the beautiful
plant, and also for Billy’s kind thoughtfulness Friday afternoon. From
that she was very skilfully led to talk more of the daughter; and
soon Billy was getting just the information she wanted--information
concerning the character, aims, and daily life of Alice Greggory.

“You see, we have some money--a very little,” explained Mrs.
Greggory, after a time; “though to get it we have had to sell all our
treasures--but the Lowestoft,” with a quick glance into Billy’s
eyes. “We need not, perhaps, live in quite so poor a place; but we
prefer--just now--to spend the little money we have for something
other than imitation comfort--lessons, for instance, and an occasional
concert. My daughter is studying even while she is teaching. She hopes
to train herself for an accompanist, and for a teacher. She does not
aspire to concert solo work. She understands her limitations.”

“But she is probably--very good--at teaching.” Billy hesitated a little.

“She is; very good. She has the best of recommendations.” A little
proudly Mrs. Greggory gave the names of two Boston pianists--names that
would carry weight anywhere.

Unconsciously Billy relaxed. She did not know until that moment how
she had worried for fear she could not, conscientiously, recommend this
Alice Greggory.

“Of course,” resumed the mother, “Alice’s pupils are few, and they pay
low prices; but she is gaining. She goes to the houses, of course. She
herself practises two hours a day at a house up on Pinckney Street. She
gives lessons to a little girl in return.”

“I see,” nodded Billy, brightly; “and I’ve been thinking, Mrs.
Greggory--maybe I know of some pupils she could get. I have a friend who
has just given hers up, owing to her marriage. Sometime, soon, I’m going
to talk to your daughter, if I may, and--”

“And here she is right now,” interposed Mrs. Greggory, as the door
opened under a hurried hand.

Billy flushed and bit her lip. She was disturbed and disappointed. She
did not particularly wish to see Alice Greggory just then. She wished
even less to see her when she noted the swift change that came to the
girl’s face at sight of herself.

“Oh! Why-good morning, Miss Neilson,” murmured Miss Greggory with a
smile so forced that her mother hurriedly looked to the azalea in search
of a possible peacemaker.

“My dear, see,” she stammered, “what Miss Neilson has brought me. And
it’s so full of blossoms, too! And she says it’ll remain so for a long,
long time--if we’ll only keep it wet.”

Alice Greggory murmured a low something--a something that she tried,
evidently, very hard to make politely appropriate and appreciative. Yet
her manner, as she took off her hat and coat and sat down, so plainly
said: “You are very kind, of course, but I wish you would keep yourself
and your plants at home!” that Mrs. Greggory began a hurried apology,
much as if the words had indeed been spoken.

“My daughter is really ill this morning. You mustn’t mind--that is, I’m
afraid you’ll think--you see, she took cold last week; a bad cold--and
she isn’t over it, yet,” finished the little woman in painful
embarrassment.

“Of course she took cold--standing all those hours in that horrid wind,
Friday!” cried Billy, indignantly.

A quick red flew to Alice Greggory’s face. Billy saw it at once and
fervently wished she had spoken of anything but that Friday afternoon.
It looked almost as if she were _reminding_ them of what she had
done that day. In her confusion, and in her anxiety to say
something--anything that would get their minds off that idea--she
uttered now the first words that came into her head. As it happened,
they were the last words that sober second thought would have told her
to say.

“Never mind, Mrs. Greggory. We’ll have her all well and strong soon;
never fear! Just wait till I send Peggy and Mary Jane to take her out
for a drive one of these mild, sunny days. You have no idea how much
good it will do her!”

Alice Greggory got suddenly to her feet. Her face was very white now.
Her eyes had the steely coldness that Billy knew so well. Her voice,
when she spoke, was low and sternly controlled.

“Miss Neilson, you will think me rude, of course, especially after your
great kindness to me the other day; but I can’t help it. It seems to me
best to speak now before it goes any further.”

“Alice, dear,” remonstrated Mrs. Greggory, extending a frightened hand.

The girl did not turn her head nor hesitate; but she caught the extended
hand and held it warmly in both her own, with gentle little pats, while
she went on speaking.

“I’m sure mother agrees with me that it is best, for the present, that
we keep quite to ourselves. I cannot question your kindness, of course,
after your somewhat unusual favor the other day; but I am very sure that
your friends, Miss Peggy, and Miss Mary Jane, have no real desire
to make my acquaintance, nor--if you’ll pardon me--have I, under the
circumstances, any wish to make theirs.”

“Oh, Alice, Alice,” began the little mother, in dismay; but a rippling
laugh from their visitor brought an angry flush even to her gentle face.

Billy understood the flush, and struggled for self-control.

“Please--please, forgive me!” she choked. “But you see--you couldn’t, of
course, know that Mary Jane and Peggy aren’t _girls_. They’re just a man
and an automobile!”

An unwilling smile trembled on Alice Greggory’s lips; but she still
stood her ground.

“After all, girls, or men and automobiles, Miss Neilson--it makes little
difference. They’re--charity. And it’s not so long that we’ve been
objects of charity that we quite really enjoy it--yet.”

There was a moment’s hush. Billy’s eyes had filled with tears.

“I never even _thought_--charity,” said Billy, so gently that a faint
red stole into the white cheeks opposite.

For a tense minute Alice Greggory held herself erect; then, with a
complete change of manner and voice, she released her mother’s hand,
dropped into her own chair again, and said wearily:

“I know you didn’t, Miss Neilson. It’s all my foolish pride, of course.
It’s only that I was thinking how dearly I would love to meet girls
again--just as _girls!_ But--I no longer have any business with pride,
of course. I shall be pleased, I’m sure,” she went on dully, “to accept
anything you may do for us, from automobile rides to--to red flannel
petticoats.”

Billy almost--but not quite--laughed. Still, the laugh would have been
near to a sob, had it been given. Surprising as was the quick transition
in the girl’s manner, and absurd as was the juxtaposition of automobiles
and red flannel petticoats, the white misery of Alice Greggory’s face
and the weary despair of her attitude were tragic--specially to one who
knew her story as did Billy Neilson. And it was because Billy did
know her story that she did not make the mistake now of offering pity.
Instead, she said with a bright smile, and a casual manner that gave no
hint of studied labor:

“Well, as it happens, Miss Greggory, what I want to-day has nothing
whatever to do with automobiles or red flannel petticoats. It’s a
matter of straight business.” (How Billy blessed the thought that had
so suddenly come to her!) “Your mother tells me you play accompaniments.
Now a girls’ club, of which I am a member, is getting up an operetta for
charity, and we need an accompanist. There is no one in the club who
is able, and at the same time willing, to spend the amount of time
necessary for practice and rehearsals. So we had decided to hire one
outside, and I have been given the task of finding one. It has occurred
to me that perhaps you would be willing to undertake it for us. Would
you?”

Billy knew, at once, from the quick change in the other’s face and
manner, that she had taken exactly the right course to relieve the
strain of the situation. Despair and lassitude fell away from Alice
Greggory almost like a garment. Her countenance became alert and
interested.

“Indeed I would! I should be glad to do it.”

“Good! Then can you come out to my home sometime to-morrow, and go over
the music with me? Rehearsals will not begin until next week; but I can
give you the music, and tell you something of what we are planning to
do.”

“Yes. I could come at ten in the morning for an hour, or at three in
the afternoon for two hours or more,” replied Miss Greggory, after a
moment’s hesitation.

“Suppose we call it in the afternoon, then,” smiled Billy, as she rose
to her feet. “And now I must go--and here’s my address,” she finished,
taking out her card and laying it on the table near her.

For reasons of her own Billy went away that morning without saying
anything more about the proposed new pupils. New pupils were not
automobile rides nor petticoats, to be sure--but she did not care to
risk disturbing the present interested happiness of Alice Greggory’s
face by mentioning anything that might be construed as too officious an
assistance.

On the whole, Billy felt well pleased with her morning’s work. To Aunt
Hannah, upon her return, she expressed herself thus:

“It’s splendid--even better than I hoped. I shall have a chance
to-morrow, of course, to see for myself just how well she plays, and all
that. I’m pretty sure, though, from what I hear, that that part will be
all right. Then the operetta will give us a chance to see a good deal of
her, and to bring about a natural meeting between her and Mary Jane. Oh,
Aunt Hannah, I couldn’t have _planned_ it better--and there the whole
thing just tumbled into my hands! I knew it had the minute I remembered
about the operetta. You know I’m chairman, and they left me to get the
accompanist; and like a flash it came to me, when I was wondering _what_
to say or do to get her out of that awful state she was in--‘Ask her to
be your accompanist.’ And I did. And I’m so glad I did! Oh, Aunt Hannah,
it’s coming out lovely!--I know it is.”



CHAPTER XXII. PLANS AND PLOTTINGS


To Billy, Alice Greggory’s first visit to Hillside was in every way a
delight and a satisfaction. To Alice, it was even more than that.
For the first time in years she found herself welcomed into a home of
wealth, culture, and refinement as an equal; and the frank cordiality
and naturalness of her hostess’s evident expectation of meeting a
congenial companion was like balm to a sensitive soul rendered morbid by
long years of superciliousness and snubbing.

No wonder that under the cheery friendliness of it all, Alice Greggory’s
cold reserve vanished, and that in its place came something very like
her old ease and charm of manner. By the time Aunt Hannah--according to
previous agreement--came into the room, the two girls were laughing and
chatting over the operetta as if they had known each other for years.

Much to Billy’s delight, Alice Greggory, as a musician, proved to be
eminently satisfactory. She was quick at sight reading, and accurate.
She played easily, and with good expression. Particularly was she a
good accompanist, possessing to a marked degree that happy faculty of
_accompanying_ a singer: which means that she neither led the way nor
lagged behind, being always exactly in sympathetic step--than which
nothing is more soul-satisfying to the singer.

It was after the music for the operetta had been well-practised and
discussed that Alice Greggory chanced to see one of Billy’s own songs
lying near her. With a pleased smile she picked it up.

“Oh, you know this, too!” she cried. “I played it for a lady only the
other day. It’s so pretty, I think--all of hers are, that I have seen.
Billy Neilson is a girl, you know, they say, in spite of--” She stopped
abruptly. Her eyes grew wide and questioning. “Miss Neilson--it can’t
be--you don’t mean--is your name--it _is--you!_” she finished joyously,
as the telltale color dyed Billy’s face. The next moment her own cheeks
burned scarlet. “And to think of my letting _you_ stand in line for a
twenty-five-cent admission!” she scorned.

“Nonsense!” laughed Billy. “It didn’t hurt me any more than it did
you. Come!”--in looking about for a quick something to take her guest’s
attention, Billy’s eyes fell on the manuscript copy of her new song,
bearing Arkwright’s name. Yielding to a daring impulse, she drew it
hastily forward. “Here’s a new one--a brand-new one, not even printed
yet. Don’t you think the words are pretty?” she asked.

As she had hoped, Alice Greggory’s eyes, after they had glanced half-way
through the first page, sought the name at the left side below the
title.

“‘Words by M. J.--’”--there was a visible start, and a pause before the
“‘Arkwright’” was uttered in a slightly different tone.

Billy noted both the start and the pause--and gloried in them.

“Yes; the words are by M. J. Arkwright,” she said with smooth unconcern,
but with a covert glance at the other’s face. “Ever hear of him?”

Alice Greggory gave a short little laugh.

“Probably not--this one. I used to know an M. J. Arkwright, long ago;
but he wasn’t--a poet, so far as I know,” she finished, with a little
catch in her breath that made Billy long to take her into a warm
embrace.

Alice Greggory turned then to the music. She had much to say of
this--very much; but she had nothing more whatever to say of Mr. M. J.
Arkwright in spite of the tempting conversation bait that Billy dropped
so freely. After that, Rosa brought in tea and toast, and the little
frosted cakes that were always such a favorite with Billy’s guests. Then
Alice Greggory said good-by--her eyes full of tears that Billy pretended
not to see.

“There!” breathed Billy, as soon as she had Aunt Hannah to herself
again. “What did I tell you? Did you see Miss Greggory’s start and blush
and hear her sigh just over the _name_ of M. J. Arkwright? Just as if--!
Now I want them to meet; only it must be casual, Aunt Hannah--casual!
And I’d rather wait till Mary Jane hears from his mother, if possible,
so if there _is_ anything good to tell the poor girl, he can tell it.”

“Yes, of course. Dear child!--I hope he can,” murmured Aunt Hannah.
(Aunt Hannah had ceased now trying to make Billy refrain from the
reprehensible “Mary Jane.” In fact, if the truth were known, Aunt Hannah
herself in her thoughts--and sometimes in her words--called him “Mary
Jane.”) “But, indeed, my dear, I didn’t see anything stiff, or--or
repelling about Miss Greggory, as you said there was.”

“There wasn’t--to-day,” smiled Billy. “Honestly, Aunt Hannah, I should
never have known her for the same girl--who showed me the door that
first morning,” she finished merrily, as she turned to go up-stairs.

It was the next day that Cyril and Marie came home from their honeymoon.
They went directly to their pretty little apartment on Beacon Street,
Brookline, within easy walking distance of Billy’s own cozy home.

Cyril intended to build in a year or two. Meanwhile they had a very
pretty, convenient home which was, according to Bertram, “electrified
to within an inch of its life, and equipped with everything that
was fireless, smokeless, dustless, and laborless.” In it Marie had a
spotlessly white kitchen where she might make puddings to her heart’s
content.

Marie had--again according to Bertram--“a visiting acquaintance with a
maid.” In other words, a stout woman was engaged to come two days in the
week to wash, iron, and scrub; also to come in each night to wash the
dinner dishes, thus leaving Marie’s evenings free--“for the shaded
lamp,” Billy said.

Marie had not arrived at this--to her, delightful--arrangement of a
“visiting acquaintance” without some opposition from her friends. Even
Billy had stood somewhat aghast.

“But, my dear, won’t it be hard for you, to do so much?” she argued one
day. “You know you aren’t very strong.”

“I know; but it won’t be hard, as I’ve planned it,” replied Marie,
“specially when I’ve been longing for years to do this very thing. Why,
Billy, if I had to stand by and watch a maid do all these things I
want to do myself, I should feel just like--like a hungry man who sees
another man eating up his dinner! Oh, of course,” she added plaintively,
after Billy’s laughter had subsided, “I sha’n’t do it always. I don’t
expect to. Of course, when we have a house--I’m not sure, then, though,
that I sha’n’t dress up the maid and order her to receive the calls and
go to the pink teas, while I make her puddings,” she finished saucily,
as Billy began to laugh again.

The bride and groom, as was proper, were, soon after their arrival,
invited to dine at both William’s and Billy’s. Then, until Marie’s “At
Homes” should begin, the devoted couple settled down to quiet days
by themselves, with only occasional visits from the family to
interrupt--“interrupt” was Bertram’s word, not Marie’s. Though it is
safe to say it was not far different from the one Cyril used--in his
thoughts.

Bertram himself, these days, was more than busy. Besides working on
Miss Winthrop’s portrait, and on two or three other commissions, he was
putting the finishing touches to four pictures which he was to show in
the exhibition soon to be held by a prominent Art Club of which he was
the acknowledged “star” member. Naturally, therefore, his time was
well occupied. Naturally, too, Billy, knowing this, lashed herself more
sternly than ever into a daily reminder of Kate’s assertion that he
belonged first to his Art.

In pursuance of this idea, Billy was careful to see that no engagement
with herself should in any way interfere with the artist’s work, and
that no word of hers should attempt to keep him at her side when ART
called. (Billy always spelled that word now in her mind with tall, black
letters--the way it had sounded when it fell from Kate’s lips.) That
these tactics on her part were beginning to fill her lover with vague
alarm and a very definite unrest, she did not once suspect. Eagerly,
therefore,--even with conscientious delight--she welcomed the new
song-words that Arkwright brought--they would give her something else
to take up her time and attention. She welcomed them, also, for another
reason: they would bring Arkwright more often to the house, and this
would, of course, lead to that “casual meeting” between him and Alice
Greggory when the rehearsals for the operetta should commence--which
would be very soon now. And Billy did so long to bring about that
meeting!

To Billy, all this was but “occupying her mind,” and playing Cupid’s
assistant to a worthy young couple torn cruelly apart by an unfeeling
fate. To Bertram--to Bertram it was terror, and woe, and all manner of
torture; for in it Bertram saw only a growing fondness on the part
of Billy for Arkwright, Arkwright’s music, Arkwright’s words, and
Arkwright’s friends.

The first rehearsal for the operetta came on Wednesday evening. There
would be another on Thursday afternoon. Billy had told Alice Greggory to
arrange her pupils so that she could stay Wednesday night at Hillside,
if the crippled mother could get along alone--and she could, Alice
had said. Thursday forenoon, therefore, Alice Greggory would, in all
probability, be at Hillside, specially as there would doubtless be an
appointment or two for private rehearsal with some nervous soloist whose
part was not progressing well. Such being the case, Billy had a plan
she meant to carry out. She was highly pleased, therefore, when Thursday
morning came, and everything, apparently, was working exactly to her
mind.

Alice was there. She had an appointment at quarter of eleven with
the leading tenor, and another later with the alto. After breakfast,
therefore, Billy said decisively:

“Now, if you please, Miss Greggory, I’m going to put you up-stairs on
the couch in the sewing-room for a nap.”

“But I’ve just got up,” remonstrated Miss Greggory.

“I know you have,” smiled Billy; “but you were very late to bed last
night, and you’ve got a hard day before you. I insist upon your resting.
You will be absolutely undisturbed there, and you must shut the door
and not come down-stairs till I send for you. Mr. Johnson isn’t due till
quarter of eleven, is he?”

“N-no.”

“Then come with me,” directed Billy, leading the way up-stairs. “There,
now, don’t come down till I call you,” she went on, when they had
reached the little room at the end of the hall. “I’m going to leave Aunt
Hannah’s door open, so you’ll have good air--she isn’t in there. She’s
writing letters in my room, Now here’s a book, and you _may_ read, but
I should prefer you to sleep,” she nodded brightly as she went out and
shut the door quietly. Then, like the guilty conspirator she was, she
went down-stairs to wait for Arkwright.

It was a fine plan. Arkwright was due at ten o’clock--Billy had
specially asked him to come at that hour. He would not know, of course,
that Alice Greggory was in the house; but soon after his arrival Billy
meant to excuse herself for a moment, slip up-stairs and send Alice
Greggory down for a book, a pair of scissors, a shawl for Aunt
Hannah--anything would do for a pretext, anything so that the girl might
walk into the living-room and find Arkwright waiting for her alone.
And then--What happened next was, in Billy’s mind, very vague, but very
attractive as a nucleus for one’s thoughts, nevertheless.

All this was, indeed, a fine plan; but--(If only fine plans would not so
often have a “but”!) In Billy’s case the “but” had to do with things
so apparently unrelated as were Aunt Hannah’s clock and a negro’s coal
wagon. The clock struck eleven at half-past ten, and the wagon dumped
itself to destruction directly in front of a trolley car in which sat
Mr. M. J. Arkwright, hurrying to keep his appointment with Miss Billy
Neilson. It was almost half-past ten when Arkwright finally rang the
bell at Hillside. Billy greeted him so eagerly, and at the same time
with such evident disappointment at his late arrival, that Arkwright’s
heart sang with joy.

“But there’s a rehearsal at quarter of eleven,” exclaimed Billy, in
answer to his hurried explanation of the delay; “and this gives so
little time for--for--so little time, you know,” she finished in
confusion, casting frantically about in her mind for an excuse to hurry
up-stairs and send Alice Greggory down before it should be quite too
late.

No wonder that Arkwright, noting the sparkle in her eye, the agitation
in her manner, and the embarrassed red in her cheek, took new courage.
For so long had this girl held him at the end of a major third or a
diminished seventh; for so long had she blithely accepted his every word
and act as devotion to music, not herself--for so long had she done all
this that he had come to fear that never would she do anything else. No
wonder then, that now, in the soft radiance of the strange, new light on
her face, his own face glowed ardently, and that he leaned forward with
an impetuous rush of eager words.

“But there is time, Miss Billy--if you’d give me leave--to say--”

“I’m afraid I kept you waiting,” interrupted the hurried voice of Alice
Greggory from the hall doorway. “I was asleep, I think, when a clock
somewhere, striking eleven--Why, Mr.--Arkwright!”

Not until Alice Greggory had nearly crossed the room did she see that
the man standing by her hostess was--not the tenor she had expected
to find--but an old acquaintance. Then it was that the tremulous
“Mr.-Arkwright!” fell from her lips.

Billy and Arkwright had turned at her first words. At her last,
Arkwright, with a half-despairing, half-reproachful glance at Billy,
stepped forward.

“Miss Greggory!--you _are_ Miss Alice Greggory, I am sure,” he said
pleasantly.

At the first opportunity Billy murmured a hasty excuse and left the
room. To Aunt Hannah she flew with a woebegone face.

“Oh, Aunt Hannah, Aunt Hannah,” she wailed, half laughing, half crying;
“that wretched little fib-teller of a clock of yours spoiled it all!”

“Spoiled it! Spoiled what, child?”

“My first meeting between Mary Jane and Miss Greggory. I had it all
arranged that they were to have it _alone_; but that miserable little
fibber up-stairs struck eleven at half-past ten, and Miss Greggory heard
it and thought she was fifteen minutes late. So down she hurried, half
awake, and spoiled all my plans. Now she’s sitting in there with him, in
chairs the length of the room apart, discussing the snowstorm last night
or the moonrise this morning--or some other such silly thing. And I had
it so beautifully planned!”

“Well, well, dear, I’m sorry, I’m sure,” smiled Aunt Hannah; “but I
can’t think any real harm is done. Did Mary Jane have anything to tell
her--about her father, I mean?”

Only the faintest flicker of Billy’s eyelid testified that the everyday
accustomedness of that “Mary Jane” on Aunt Hannah’s lips had not escaped
her.

“No, nothing definite. Yet there was a little. Friends are still trying
to clear his name, and I believe are meeting with increasing success.
I don’t know, of course, whether he’ll say anything about it
to-day--_now_. To think I had to be right round under foot like that
when they met!” went on Billy, indignantly. “I shouldn’t have been, in a
minute more, though. I was just trying to think up an excuse to come
up and send down Miss Greggory, when Mary Jane began to tell me
something--I haven’t the faintest idea what--then _she_ appeared, and it
was all over. And there’s the doorbell, and the tenor, I suppose; so of
course it’s all over now,” she sighed, rising to go down-stairs.

As it chanced, however, it was not the tenor, but a message from him--a
message that brought dire consternation to the Chairman of the Committee
of Arrangements. The tenor had thrown up his part. He could not take it;
it was too difficult. He felt that this should be told--at once rather
than to worry along for another week or two, and then give up. So he had
told it.

“But what shall we do, Miss Greggory?” appealed Billy. “It _is_ a hard
part, you know; but if Mr. Tobey can’t take it, I don’t know who can. We
don’t want to hire a singer for it, if we can help it. The profits
are to go to the Home for Crippled Children, you know,” she explained,
turning to Arkwright, “and we decided to hire only the accompanist.”

An odd expression flitted across Miss Greggory’s face.

“Mr. Arkwright used to sing--tenor,” she observed quietly.

“As if he didn’t now--a perfectly glorious tenor,” retorted Billy. “But
as if _he_ would take _this!_”

For only a brief moment did Arkwright hesitate; then blandly he
suggested:

“Suppose you try him, and see.”

Billy sat suddenly erect.

“Would you, really? _Could_ you--take the time, and all?” she cried.

“Yes, I think I would--under the circumstances,” he smiled. “I think
I could, too, though I might not be able to attend all the rehearsals.
Still, if I find I have to ask permission, I’ll endeavor to convince
the powers-that-be that singing in this operetta will be just the
stepping-stone I need to success in Grand Opera.”

“Oh, if you only would take it,” breathed Billy, “we’d be so glad!”

“Well,” said Arkwright, his eyes on Billy’s frankly delighted face, “as
I said before--under the circumstances I think I would.”

“Thank you! Then it’s all beautifully settled,” rejoiced Billy, with a
happy sigh; and unconsciously she gave Alice Greggory’s hand near her a
little pat.

In Billy’s mind the “circumstances” of Arkwright’s acceptance of the
part were Alice Greggory and her position as accompanist, of course.
Billy would have been surprised indeed--and dismayed--had she known that
in Arkwright’s mind the “circumstances” were herself, and the fact that
she, too, had a part in the operetta, necessitating her presence at
rehearsals, and hinting at a delightful comradeship impossible, perhaps,
otherwise.



CHAPTER XXIII. THE CAUSE AND BERTRAM


February came The operetta, for which Billy was working so hard, was
to be given the twentieth. The Art Exhibition, for which Bertram was
preparing his four pictures, was to open the sixteenth, with a private
view for specially invited friends the evening before.

On the eleventh day of February Mrs. Greggory and her daughter arrived
at Hillside for a ten-days’ visit. Not until after a great deal of
pleading and argument, however, had Billy been able to bring this about.

“But, my dears, both of you,” Billy had at last said to them; “just
listen. We shall have numberless rehearsals during those last ten
days before the thing comes off. They will be at all hours, and of all
lengths. You, Miss Greggory, will have to be on hand for them all, of
course, and will have to stay all night several times, probably. You,
Mrs. Greggory, ought not to be alone down here. There is no sensible,
valid reason why you should not both come out to the house for those ten
days; and I shall feel seriously hurt and offended if you do not consent
to do it.”

“But--my pupils,” Alice Greggory had demurred.

“You can go in town from my home at any time to give your lessons, and
a little shifting about and arranging for those ten days will enable you
to set the hours conveniently one after another, I am sure, so you can
attend to several on one trip. Meanwhile your mother will be having a
lovely time teaching Aunt Hannah how to knit a new shawl; so you won’t
have to be worrying about her.”

After all, it had been the great good and pleasure which the visit would
bring to Mrs. Greggory that had been the final straw to tip the scales.
On the eleventh of February, therefore, in the company of the once
scorned “Peggy and Mary Jane,” Alice Greggory and her mother had arrived
at Hillside.

Ever since the first meeting of Alice Greggory and Arkwright, Billy had
been sorely troubled by the conduct of the two young people. She had,
as she mournfully told herself, been able to make nothing of it. The two
were civility itself to each other, but very plainly they were not at
ease in each other’s company; and Billy, much to her surprise, had to
admit that Arkwright did not appear to appreciate the “circumstances”
 now that he had them. The pair called each other, ceremoniously, “Mr.
Arkwright,” and “Miss Greggory”--but then, that, of course, did not
“signify,” Billy declared to herself.

“I suppose you don’t ever call him ‘Mary Jane,’” she said to the girl, a
little mischievously, one day.

“‘Mary Jane’? Mr. Arkwright? No, I don’t,” rejoined Miss Greggory, with
an odd smile. Then, after a moment, she added: “I believe his brothers
and sisters used to, however.”

“Yes, I know,” laughed Billy. “We thought he was a real Mary Jane,
once.” And she told the story of his arrival. “So you see,” she
finished, when Alice Greggory had done laughing over the tale, “he
always will be ‘Mary Jane’ to us. By the way, what is his name?”

Miss Greggory looked up in surprise.

“Why, it’s--” She stopped short, her eyes questioning. “Why, hasn’t he
ever told you?” she queried.

Billy lifted her chin.

“No. He told us to guess it, and we have guessed everything we can think
of, even up to ‘Methuselah John’; but he says we haven’t hit it yet.”

“‘Methuselah John,’ indeed!” laughed the other, merrily.

“Well, I’m sure that’s a nice, solid name,” defended Billy, her chin
still at a challenging tilt. “If it isn’t ‘Methuselah John,’ what is it,
then?”

But Alice Greggory shook her head. She, too, it seemed, could be firm,
on occasion. And though she smiled brightly, all she would say, was:

“If he hasn’t told you, I sha’n’t. You’ll have to go to him.”

“Oh, well, I can still call him ‘Mary Jane,’” retorted Billy, with airy
disdain.

All this, however, so far as Billy could see, was not in the least
helping along the cause that had become so dear to her--the reuniting of
a pair of lovers. It occurred to her then, one day, that perhaps, after
all, they were not lovers, and did not wish to be reunited. At
this disquieting thought Billy decided, suddenly, to go almost to
headquarters. She would speak to Mrs. Greggory if ever the opportunity
offered. Great was her joy, therefore, when, a day or two after the
Greggorys arrived at the house, Mrs. Greggory’s chance reference to
Arkwright and her daughter gave Billy the opportunity she sought.

“They used to know each other long ago, Mr. Arkwright tells me,” Billy
began warily.

“Yes.”

The quietly polite monosyllable was not very encouraging, to be sure;
but Billy, secure in her conviction that her cause was a righteous one,
refused to be daunted.

“I think it was so romantic--their running across each other like this,
Mrs. Greggory,” she murmured. “And there _was_ a romance, wasn’t there?
I have just felt in my bones that there was--a romance!”

Billy held her breath. It was what she had meant to say, but now that
she had said it, the words seemed very fearsome indeed--to say to Mrs.
Greggory. Then Billy remembered her Cause, and took heart--Billy was
spelling it now with a capital C.

For a long minute Mrs. Greggory did not answer--for so long a minute
that Billy’s breath dropped into a fluttering sigh, and her Cause became
suddenly “IMPERTINENCE” spelled in black capitals. Then Mrs. Greggory
spoke slowly, a little sadly.

“I don’t mind saying to you that I did hope, once, that there would be a
romance there. They were the best of friends, and they were well-suited
to each other in tastes and temperament. I think, indeed, that the
romance was well under way (though there was never an engagement)
when--” Mrs. Greggory paused and wet her lips. Her voice, when she
resumed, carried the stern note so familiar to Billy in her first
acquaintance with this woman and her daughter. “As I presume
Mr. Arkwright has told you, we have met with many changes in our
life--changes which necessitated a new home and a new mode of
living. Naturally, under those circumstances, old friends--and old
romances--must change, too.”

“But, Mrs. Greggory,” stammered Billy, “I’m sure Mr. Arkwright would
want--” An up-lifted hand silenced her peremptorily.

“Mr. Arkwright was very kind, and a gentleman, always,” interposed the
lady, coldly; “but Judge Greggory’s daughter would not allow herself
to be placed where apologies for her father would be necessary--_ever!_
There, please, dear Miss Neilson, let us not talk of it any more,”
 begged Mrs. Greggory, brokenly.

“No, indeed, of course not!” cried Billy; but her heart rejoiced.

She understood it all now. Arkwright and Alice Greggory had been almost
lovers when the charges against the Judge’s honor had plunged the family
into despairing humiliation. Then had come the time when, according
to Arkwright’s own story, the two women had shut themselves indoors,
refused to see their friends, and left town as soon as possible. Thus
had come the breaking of whatever tie there was between Alice Greggory
and Arkwright. Not to have broken it would have meant, for Alice, the
placing of herself in a position where, sometime, apologies must be made
for her father. This was what Mrs. Greggory had meant--and again, as
Billy thought of it, Billy’s heart rejoiced.

Was not her way clear now before her? Did she not have it in her power,
possibly--even probably--to bring happiness where only sadness was
before? As if it would not be a simple thing to rekindle the old
flame--to make these two estranged hearts beat as one again!

Not now was the Cause an IMPERTINENCE in tall black letters. It was,
instead, a shining beacon in letters of flame guiding straight to
victory.

Billy went to sleep that night making plans for Alice Greggory and
Arkwright to be thrown together naturally--“just as a matter of course,
you know,” she said drowsily to herself, all in the dark.

Some three or four miles away down Beacon Street at that moment Bertram
Henshaw, in the Strata, was, as it happened, not falling asleep. He was
lying broadly and unhappily awake Bertram very frequently lay broadly
and unhappily awake these days--or rather nights. He told himself, on
these occasions, that it was perfectly natural--indeed it was!--that
Billy should be with Arkwright and his friends, the Greggorys, so much.
There were the new songs, and the operetta with its rehearsals as a
cause for it all. At the same time, deep within his fearful soul was the
consciousness that Arkwright, the Greggorys, and the operetta were but
Music--Music, the spectre that from the first had dogged his footsteps.

With Billy’s behavior toward himself, Bertram could find no fault. She
was always her sweet, loyal, lovable self, eager to hear of his work,
earnestly solicitous that it should be a success. She even--as he
sometimes half-irritably remembered--had once told him that she realized
he belonged to Art before he did to himself; and when he had indignantly
denied this, she had only laughed and thrown a kiss at him, with the
remark that he ought to hear his sister Kate’s opinion of that matter.
As if he wanted Kate’s opinion on that or anything else that concerned
him and Billy!

Once, torn by jealousy, and exasperated at the frequent interruptions of
their quiet hours together, he had complained openly.

“Actually, Billy, it’s worse than Marie’s wedding,” he declared, “_Then_
it was tablecloths and napkins that could be dumped in a chair. _Now_
it’s a girl who wants to rehearse, or a woman that wants a different
wig, or a telephone message that the sopranos have quarrelled again. I
loathe that operetta!”

Billy laughed, but she frowned, too.

“I know, dear; I don’t like that part. I wish they _would_ let me alone
when I’m with you! But as for the operetta, it is really a good thing,
dear, and you’ll say so when you see it. It’s going to be a great
success--I can say that because my part is only a small one, you know.
We shall make lots of money for the Home, too, I’m sure.”

“But you’re wearing yourself all out with it, dear,” scowled Bertram.

“Nonsense! I like it; besides, when I’m doing this I’m not telephoning
you to come and amuse me. Just think what a lot of extra time you have
for your work!”

“Don’t want it,” avowed Bertram.

“But the _work_ may,” retorted Billy, showing all her dimples. “Never
mind, though; it’ll all be over after the twentieth. _This_ isn’t an
understudy like Marie’s wedding, you know,” she finished demurely.

“Thank heaven for that!” Bertram had breathed fervently. But even as he
said the words he grew sick with fear. What if, after all, this _were_
an understudy to what was to come later when Music, his rival, had
really conquered?

Bertram knew that however secure might seem Billy’s affection for
himself, there was still in his own mind a horrid fear lest underneath
that security were an unconscious, growing fondness for something he
could not give, for some one that he was not--a fondness that would one
day cause Billy to awake. As Bertram, in his morbid fancy pictured it,
he realized only too well what that awakening would mean to himself.



CHAPTER XXIV. THE ARTIST AND HIS ART


The private view of the paintings and drawings of the Brush and Pencil
Club on the evening of the fifteenth was a great success. Society sent
its fairest women in frocks that were pictures in themselves. Art
sent its severest critics and its most ardent devotees. The Press sent
reporters that the World might know what Art and Society were doing, and
how they did it.

Before the canvases signed with Bertram Henshaw’s name there was always
to be found an admiring group representing both Art and Society with
the Press on the outskirts to report. William Henshaw, coming unobserved
upon one such group, paused a moment to smile at the various more or
less disconnected comments.

“What a lovely blue!”

“Marvellous color sense!”

“Now those shadows are--”

“He gets his high lights so--”

“I declare, she looks just like Blanche Payton!”

“Every line there is full of meaning.”

“I suppose it’s very fine, but--”

“Now, I say, Henshaw is--”

“Is this by the man that’s painting Margy Winthrop’s portrait?”

“It’s idealism, man, idealism!”

“I’m going to have a dress just that shade of blue.”

“Isn’t that just too sweet!”

“Now for realism, I consider Henshaw--”

“There aren’t many with his sensitive, brilliant touch.”

“Oh, what a pretty picture!”

William moved on then.

Billy was rapturously proud of Bertram that evening. He was, of course,
the centre of congratulations and hearty praise. At his side, Billy,
with sparkling eyes, welcomed each smiling congratulation and gloried in
every commendatory word she heard.

“Oh, Bertram, isn’t it splendid! I’m so proud of you,” she whispered
softly, when a moment’s lull gave her opportunity.

“They’re all words, words, idle words,” he laughed; but his eyes shone.

“Just as if they weren’t all true!” she bridled, turning to greet
William, who came up at that moment. “Isn’t it fine, Uncle William?” she
beamed. “And aren’t we proud of him?”

“We are, indeed,” smiled the man. “But if you and Bertram want to get
the real opinion of this crowd, you should go and stand near one of his
pictures five minutes. As a sort of crazy--quilt criticism it can’t be
beat.”

“I know,” laughed Bertram. “I’ve done it, in days long gone.”

“Bertram, not really?” cried Billy.

“Sure! As if every young artist at the first didn’t don goggles or a
false mustache and study the pictures on either side of his own till he
could paint them with his eyes shut!”

“And what did you hear?” demanded the girl.

“What didn’t I hear?” laughed her lover. “But I didn’t do it but once
or twice. I lost my head one day and began to argue the question of
perspective with a couple of old codgers who were criticizing a bit of
foreshortening that was my special pet. I forgot my goggles and sailed
in. The game was up then, of course; and I never put them on again. But
it was worth a farm to see their faces when I stood ‘discovered’ as the
stage-folk say.”

“Serves you right, sir--listening like that,” scolded Billy.

Bertram laughed and shrugged his shoulders.

“Well, it cured me, anyhow. I haven’t done it since,” he declared.

It was some time later, on the way home, that Bertram said:

“It was gratifying, of course, Billy, and I liked it. It would be absurd
to say I didn’t like the many pleasant words of apparently sincere
appreciation I heard to-night. But I couldn’t help thinking of the next
time--always the next time.”

“The next time?” Billy’s eyes were slightly puzzled.

“That I exhibit, I mean. The Bohemian Ten hold their exhibition next
month, you know. I shall show just one picture--the portrait of Miss
Winthrop.”

“Oh, Bertram!”

“It’ll be ‘Oh, Bertram!’ then, dear, if it isn’t a success,” he sighed.
“I don’t believe you realize yet what that thing is going to mean for
me.”

“Well, I should think I might,” retorted Billy, a little tremulously,
“after all I’ve heard about it. I should think _everybody_ knew you were
doing it, Bertram. Actually, I’m not sure Marie’s scrub-lady won’t ask
me some day how Mr. Bertram’s picture is coming on!”

“That’s the dickens of it, in a way,” sighed Bertram, with a faint
smile. “I am amazed--and a little frightened, I’ll admit--at the
universality of the interest. You see, the Winthrops have been pleased
to spread it, for one reason or another, and of course many already know
of the failures of Anderson and Fullam. That’s why, if I should fail--”

“But you aren’t going to fail,” interposed the girl, resolutely.

“No, I know I’m not. I only said ‘if,’” fenced the man, his voice not
quite steady.

“There isn’t going to be any ‘if,’” settled Billy. “Now tell me, when is
the exhibition?”

“March twentieth--the private view. Mr. Winthrop is not only willing,
but anxious, that I show it. I wasn’t sure that he’d want me to--in
an exhibition. But it seems he does. His daughter says he has every
confidence in the portrait and wants everybody to see it.”

“That’s where he shows his good sense,” declared Billy. Then, with
just a touch of constraint, she asked: “And how is the new, latest pose
coming on?”

“Very well, I think,” answered Bertram, a little hesitatingly. “We’ve
had so many, many interruptions, though, that it is surprising how slow
it is moving. In the first place, Miss Winthrop is gone more than half
the time (she goes again to-morrow for a week!), and in this portrait
I’m not painting a stroke without my model before me. I mean to take no
chances, you see; and Miss Winthrop is perfectly willing to give me all
the sittings I wish for. Of course, if she hadn’t changed the pose and
costume so many times, it would have been done long ago--and she knows
it.”

“Of course--she knows it,” murmured Billy, a little faintly, but with a
peculiar intonation in her voice.

“And so you see,” sighed Bertram, “what the twentieth of March is going
to mean for me.”

“It’s going to mean a splendid triumph!” asserted Billy; and this time
her voice was not faint, and it carried only a ring of loyal confidence.

“You blessed comforter!” murmured Bertram, giving with his eyes the
caress that his lips would so much have preferred to give--under more
propitious circumstances.



CHAPTER XXV. THE OPERETTA


The sixteenth, seventeenth, and eighteenth of February were, for Billy,
and for all concerned in the success of the operetta, days of hurry,
worry, and feverish excitement, as was to be expected, of course. Each
afternoon and every evening saw rehearsals in whole, or in parts. A
friend of the Club-president’s sister-in-law-a woman whose husband was
stage manager of a Boston theatre--had consented to come and “coach”
 the performers. At her appearance the performers--promptly thrown into
nervous spasms by this fearsome nearness to the “real thing”--forgot
half their cues, and conducted themselves generally like frightened
school children on “piece day,” much to their own and every one else’s
despair. Then, on the evening of the nineteenth, came the final dress
rehearsal on the stage of the pretty little hall that had been engaged
for the performance of the operetta.

The dress rehearsal, like most of its kind, was, for every one, nothing
but a nightmare of discord, discouragement, and disaster. Everybody’s
nerves were on edge, everybody was sure the thing would be a “flat
failure.” The soprano sang off the key, the alto forgot to shriek
“Beware, beware!” until it was so late there was nothing to beware of;
the basso stepped on Billy’s trailing frock and tore it; even the tenor,
Arkwright himself, seemed to have lost every bit of vim from his acting.
The chorus sang “Oh, be joyful!” with dirge-like solemnity, and danced
as if legs and feet were made of wood. The lovers, after the fashion of
amateur actors from time immemorial, “made love like sticks.”

Billy, when the dismal thing had dragged its way through the final
note, sat “down front,” crying softly in the semi-darkness while she
was waiting for Alice Greggory to “run it through just once more” with a
pair of tired-faced, fluffy-skirted fairies who could _not_ learn that a
duet meant a _duet_--not two solos, independently hurried or retarded as
one’s fancy for the moment dictated.

To Billy, just then, life did not look to be even half worth the living.
Her head ached, her throat was going-to-be-sore, her shoe hurt, and her
dress--the trailing frock that had been under the basso’s foot--could
not possibly be decently repaired before to-morrow night, she was sure.

Bad as these things were, however, they were only the intimate,
immediate woes. Beyond and around them lay others many others. To be
sure, Bertram and happiness were supposed to be somewhere in the dim
and uncertain future; but between her and them lay all these other woes,
chief of which was the unutterable tragedy of to-morrow night.

It was to be a failure, of course. Billy had calmly made up her mind to
that, now. But then, she was used to failures, she told herself. Was she
not plainly failing every day of her life to bring about even friendship
between Alice Greggory and Arkwright? Did they not emphatically and
systematically refuse to be “thrown together,” either naturally, or
unnaturally? And yet--whenever again could she expect such opportunities
to further her Cause as had been hers the past few weeks, through the
operetta and its rehearsals? Certainly, never again! It had been a
failure like all the rest; like the operetta, in particular.

Billy did not mean that any one should know she was crying. She supposed
that all the performers except herself and the two earth-bound fairies
by the piano with Alice Greggory were gone. She knew that John with
Peggy was probably waiting at the door outside, and she hoped that soon
the fairies would decide to go home and go to bed, and let other people
do the same. For her part, she did not see why they were struggling so
hard, anyway. Why needn’t they go ahead and sing their duet like two
solos if they wanted to? As if a little thing like that could make a
feather’s weight of difference in the grand total of to-morrow night’s
wretchedness when the final curtain should have been rung down on their
shame!

“Miss Neilson, you aren’t--crying!” exclaimed a low voice; and Billy
turned to find Arkwright standing by her side in the dim light.

“Oh, no--yes--well, maybe I was, a little,” stammered Billy, trying to
speak very unconcernedly. “How warm it is in here! Do you think it’s
going to rain?--that is, outdoors, of course, I mean.”

Arkwright dropped into the seat behind Billy and leaned forward, his
eyes striving to read the girl’s half-averted face. If Billy had turned,
she would have seen that Arkwright’s own face showed white and a little
drawn-looking in the feeble rays from the light by the piano. But
Billy did not turn. She kept her eyes steadily averted; and she went on
speaking--airy, inconsequential words.

“Dear me, if those girls _would_ only pull together! But then, what’s
the difference? I supposed you had gone home long ago, Mr. Arkwright.”

“Miss Neilson, you _are_ crying!” Arkwright’s voice was low and
vibrant. “As if anything or anybody in the world _could_ make _you_ cry!
Please--you have only to command me, and I will sally forth at once to
slay the offender.” His words were light, but his voice still shook with
emotion.

Billy gave an hysterical little giggle. Angrily she brushed the
persistent tears from her eyes.

“All right, then; I’ll dub you my Sir Knight,” she faltered. “But I’ll
warn you--you’ll have your hands full. You’ll have to slay my headache,
and my throat-ache, and my shoe that hurts, and the man who stepped on
my dress, and--and everybody in the operetta, including myself.”

“Everybody--in the operetta!” Arkwright did look a little startled, at
this wholesale slaughter.

“Yes. Did you ever see such an awful, awful thing as that was to-night?”
 moaned the girl.

Arkwright’s face relaxed.

“Oh, so _that’s_ what it is!” he laughed lightly. “Then it’s only a bogy
of fear that I’ve got to slay, after all; and I’ll despatch that right
now with a single blow. Dress rehearsals always go like that to-night.
I’ve been in a dozen, and I never yet saw one go half decent. Don’t you
worry. The worse the rehearsal, the better the performance, every time!”

Billy blinked off the tears and essayed a smile as she retorted:

“Well, if that’s so, then ours to-morrow night ought to be a--a--”

“A corker,” helped out Arkwright, promptly; “and it will be, too. You
poor child, you’re worn out; and no wonder! But don’t worry another
bit about the operetta. Now is there anything else I can do for you?
Anything else I can slay?”

Billy laughed tremulously.

“N-no, thank you; not that you can--slay, I fancy,” she sighed.
“That is--not that you _will_,” she amended wistfully, with a sudden
remembrance of the Cause, for which he might do so much--if he only
would.

Arkwright bent a little nearer. His breath stirred the loose, curling
hair behind Billy’s ear. His eyes had flashed into sudden fire.

“But you don’t know what I’d do if I could,” he murmured unsteadily. “If
you’d let me tell you--if you only knew the wish that has lain closest
to my heart for--”

“Miss Neilson, please,” called the despairing voice of one of the
earth-bound fairies; “Miss Neilson, you _are_ there, aren’t you?”

“Yes, I’m right here,” answered Billy, wearily. Arkwright answered, too,
but not aloud--which was wise.

“Oh dear! you’re tired, I know,” wailed the fairy, “but if you would
please come and help us just a minute! Could you?”

“Why, yes, of course.” Billy rose to her feet, still wearily.

Arkwright touched her arm. She turned and saw his face. It was very
white--so white that her eyes widened in surprised questioning.

As if answering the unspoken words, the man shook his head.

“I can’t, now, of course,” he said. “But there _is_ something I want to
say--a story I want to tell you--after to-morrow, perhaps. May I?”

To Billy, the tremor of his voice, the suffering in his eyes, and the
“story” he was begging to tell could have but one interpretation: Alice
Greggory. Her face, therefore, was a glory of tender sympathy as she
reached out her hand in farewell.

“Of course you may,” she cried. “Come any time after to-morrow night,
please,” she smiled encouragingly, as she turned toward the stage.

Behind her, Arkwright stumbled twice as he walked up the incline toward
the outer door--stumbled, not because of the semi-darkness of the little
theatre, but because of the blinding radiance of a girl’s illumined face
which he had, a moment before, read all unknowingly exactly wrong.


A little more than twenty-four hours later, Billy Neilson, in her own
room, drew a long breath of relief. It was twelve o’clock on the night
of the twentieth, and the operetta was over.

To Billy, life was eminently worth living to-night. Her head did not
ache, her throat was not sore, her shoe did not hurt, her dress had
been mended so successfully by Aunt Hannah, and with such comforting
celerity, that long before night one would never have suspected the
filmy thing had known the devastating tread of any man’s foot. Better
yet, the soprano had sung exactly to key, the alto had shrieked
“Beware!” to thrilling purpose, Arkwright had shown all his old charm
and vim, and the chorus had been prodigies of joyousness and marvels
of lightness. Even the lovers had lost their stiffness, while the two
earth-bound fairies of the night before had found so amiable a meeting
point that their solos sounded, to the uninitiated, very like, indeed,
a duet. The operetta was, in short, a glorious and gratifying success,
both artistically and financially. Nor was this all that, to Billy, made
life worth the living: Arkwright had begged permission that evening to
come up the following afternoon to tell her his “story”; and Billy, who
was so joyously confident that this story meant the final crowning of
her Cause with victory, had given happy consent.

Bertram was to come up in the evening, and Billy was anticipating that,
too, particularly: it had been so long since they had known a really
free, comfortable evening together, with nothing to interrupt.
Doubtless, too, after Arkwright’s visit of the afternoon, she would be
in a position to tell Bertram the story of the suspended romance between
Arkwright and Miss Greggory, and perhaps something, also, of her own
efforts to bring the couple together again. On the whole, life did,
indeed, look decidedly worth the living as Billy, with a contented sigh,
turned over to go to sleep.



CHAPTER XXVI. ARKWRIGHT TELLS ANOTHER STORY


Promptly at the suggested hour on the day after the operetta, Arkwright
rang Billy Neilson’s doorbell. Promptly, too, Billy herself came into
the living-room to greet him.

Billy was in white to-day--a soft, creamy white wool with a touch of
black velvet at her throat and in her hair. The man thought she had
never looked so lovely: Arkwright was still under the spell wrought by
the soft radiance of Billy’s face the two times he had mentioned his
“story.”

Until the night before the operetta Arkwright had been more than
doubtful of the way that story would be received, should he ever
summon the courage to tell it. Since then his fears had been changed to
rapturous hopes. It was very eagerly, therefore, that he turned now to
greet Billy as she came into the room.

“Suppose we don’t have any music to-day. Suppose we give the whole time
up to the story,” she smiled brightly, as she held out her hand.

Arkwright’s heart leaped; but almost at once it throbbed with a vague
uneasiness. He would have preferred to see her blush and be a little shy
over that story. Still--there was a chance, of course, that she did not
know what the story was. But if that were the case, what of the radiance
in her face? What of--Finding himself in a tangled labyrinth that led
apparently only to disappointment and disaster, Arkwright pulled himself
up with a firm hand.

“You are very kind,” he murmured, as he relinquished her fingers and
seated himself near her. “You are sure, then, that you wish to hear the
story?”

“Very sure,” smiled Billy.

Arkwright hesitated. Again he longed to see a little embarrassment in
the bright face opposite. Suddenly it came to him, however, that if
Billy knew what he was about to say, it would manifestly not be her part
to act as if she knew! With a lighter heart, then, he began his story.

“You want it from the beginning?”

“By all means! I never dip into books, nor peek at the ending. I don’t
think it’s fair to the author.”

“Then I will, indeed, begin at the beginning,” smiled Arkwright, “for
I’m specially anxious that you shall be--even more than ‘fair’ to me.”
 His voice shook a little, but he hurried on. “There’s a--girl--in it; a
very dear, lovely girl.”

“Of course--if it’s a nice story,” twinkled Billy.

“And--there’s a man, too. It’s a love story, you see.”

“Again of course--if it’s interesting.” Billy laughed mischievously, but
she flushed a little.

“Still, the man doesn’t amount to much, after all, perhaps. I might as
well own up at the beginning--I’m the man.”

“That will do for you to say, as long as you’re telling the story,”
 smiled Billy. “We’ll let it pass for proper modesty on your part. But I
shall say--the personal touch only adds to the interest.”

Arkwright drew in his breath.

“We’ll hope--it’ll really be so,” he murmured.

There was a moment’s silence. Arkwright seemed to be hesitating what to
say.

“Well?” prompted Billy, with a smile. “We have the hero and the heroine;
now what happens next? Do you know,” she added, “I have always thought
that part must bother the story-writers--to get the couple to doing
interesting things, after they’d got them introduced.”

Arkwright sighed.

“Perhaps--on paper; but, you see, my story has been _lived_, so far. So
it’s quite different.”

“Very well, then--what did happen?” smiled Billy.

“I was trying to think--of the first thing. You see it began with a
picture, a photograph of the girl. Mother had it. I saw it, and wanted
it, and--” Arkwright had started to say “and took it.” But he stopped
with the last two words unsaid. It was not time, yet, he deemed, to tell
this girl how much that picture had been to him for so many months past.
He hurried on a little precipitately. “You see, I had heard about this
girl a lot; and I liked--what I heard.”

“You mean--you didn’t know her--at the first?” Billy’s eyes were
surprised. Billy had supposed that Arkwright had always known Alice
Greggory.

“No, I didn’t know the girl--till afterwards. Before that I was always
dreaming and wondering what she would be like.”

“Oh!” Billy subsided into her chair, still with the puzzled questioning
in her eyes.

“Then I met her.”

“Yes?”

“And she was everything and more than I had pictured her.”

“And you fell in love at once?” Billy’s voice had grown confident again.

“Oh, I was already in love,” sighed Arkwright. “I simply sank deeper.”

“Oh-h!” breathed Billy, sympathetically. “And the girl?”

“She didn’t care--or know--for a long time. I’m not really sure she
cares--or knows--even now.” Arkwright’s eyes were wistfully fixed on
Billy’s face.

“Oh, but you can’t tell, always, about girls,” murmured Billy,
hurriedly. A faint pink had stolen to her forehead. She was thinking of
Alice Greggory, and wondering if, indeed, Alice did care; and if she,
Billy, might dare to assure this man--what she believed to be true--that
his sweetheart was only waiting for him to come to her and tell her that
he loved her.

Arkwright saw the color sweep to Billy’s forehead, and took sudden
courage. He leaned forward eagerly. A tender light came to his eyes. The
expression on his face was unmistakable.

“Billy, do you mean, really, that there is--hope for me?” he begged
brokenly.

Billy gave a visible start. A quick something like shocked terror came
to her eyes. She drew back and would have risen to her feet had the
thought not come to her that twice before she had supposed a man was
making love to her, when subsequent events proved that she had been
mortifyingly mistaken: once when Cyril had told her of his love for
Marie; and again when William had asked her to come back as a daughter
to the house she had left desolate.

Telling herself sternly now not to be for the third time a “foolish
little simpleton,” she summoned all her wits, forced a cheery smile to
her lips, and said:

“Well, really, Mr. Arkwright, of course I can’t answer for the girl, so
I’m not the one to give hope; and--”

“But you are the one,” interrupted the man, passionately. “You’re the
only one! As if from the very first I hadn’t loved you, and--”

“No, no, not that--not that! I’m mistaken! I’m not understanding what
you mean,” pleaded a horror-stricken voice. Billy was on her feet now,
holding up two protesting hands, palms outward.

“Miss Neilson, you don’t mean--that you haven’t known--all this
time--that it was you?” The man, now, was on his feet, his eyes hurt and
unbelieving, looking into hers.

Billy paled. She began slowly to back away. Her eyes, still fixed on
his, carried the shrinking terror of one who sees a horrid vision.

“But you know--you _must_ know that I am not yours to win!” she
reproached him sharply. “I’m to be Bertram Henshaw’s--_wife_.” From
Billy’s shocked young lips the word dropped with a ringing force that
was at once accusatory and prohibitive. It was as if, by the mere
utterance of the word, wife, she had drawn a sacred circle about her and
placed herself in sanctuary.

From the blazing accusation in her eyes Arkwright fell back.

“Wife! You are to be Bertram Henshaw’s wife!” he exclaimed. There was no
mistaking the amazed incredulity on his face.

Billy caught her breath. The righteous indignation in her eyes fled, and
a terrified appeal took its place.

“You don’t mean that you _didn’t--know?_” she faltered.

There was a moment’s silence. A power quite outside herself kept Billy’s
eyes on Arkwright’s face, and forced her to watch the change there from
unbelief to belief, and from belief to set misery.

“No, I did not know,” said the man then, dully, as he turned, rested his
arm on the mantel behind him, and half shielded his face with his hand.

Billy sank into a low chair. Her fingers fluttered nervously to her
throat. Her piteous, beseeching eyes were on the broad back and bent
head of the man before her.

“But I--I don’t see how you could have helped--knowing,” she stammered
at last. “I don’t see how such a thing could have happened that you
shouldn’t know!”

“I’ve been trying to think, myself,” returned the man, still in a dull,
emotionless voice.

“It’s been so--so much a matter of course. I supposed everybody knew
it,” maintained Billy.

“Perhaps that’s just it--that it was--so much a matter of course,”
 rejoined the man. “You see, I know very few of your friends, anyway--who
would be apt to mention it to me.”

“But the announcements--oh, you weren’t here then,” moaned Billy. “But
you must have known that--that he came here a good deal--that we were
together so much!”

“To a certain extent, yes,” sighed Arkwright. “But I took your
friendship with him and his brothers as--as a matter of course. _That_
was _my_ ‘matter of course,’ you see,” he went on bitterly. “I knew
you were Mr. William Henshaw’s namesake, and Calderwell had told me
the story of your coming to them when you were left alone in the world.
Calderwell had said, too, that--” Arkwright paused, then hurried on a
little constrainedly--“well, he said something that led me to think Mr.
Bertram Henshaw was not a marrying man, anyway.”

Billy winced and changed color. She had noticed the pause, and she knew
very well what it was that Calderwell had said to occasion that pause.
Must _always_ she be reminded that no one expected Bertram Henshaw to
love any girl--except to paint?

“But--but Mr. Calderwell must know about the engagement--now,” she
stammered.

“Very likely, but I have not happened to hear from him since my arrival
in Boston. We do not correspond.”

There was a long silence, then Arkwright spoke again.

“I think I understand now--many things. I wonder I did not see them
before; but I never thought of Bertram Henshaw’s being--If Calderwell
hadn’t said--” Again Arkwright stopped with his sentence half complete,
and again Billy winced. “I’ve been a blind fool. I was so intent on my
own--I’ve been a blind fool; that’s all,” repeated Arkwright, with a
break in his voice.

Billy tried to speak, but instead of words, there came only a choking
sob.

Arkwright turned sharply.

“Miss Neilson, don’t--please,” he begged. “There is no need that you
should suffer--too.”

“But I am so ashamed that such a thing _could_ happen,” she faltered.
“I’m sure, some way, I must be to blame. But I never thought. I was
blind, too. I was wrapped up in my own affairs. I never suspected. I
never even _thought_ to suspect! I thought of course you knew. It was
just the music that brought us together, I supposed; and you were
just like one of the family, anyway. I always thought of you as Aunt
Hannah’s--” She stopped with a vivid blush.

“As Aunt Hannah’s niece, Mary Jane, of course,” supplied Arkwright,
bitterly, turning back to his old position. “And that was my own fault,
too. My name, Miss Neilson, is Michael Jeremiah,” he went on wearily,
after a moment’s hesitation, his voice showing his utter abandonment to
despair. “When a boy at school I got heartily sick of the ‘Mike’ and
the ‘Jerry’ and the even worse ‘Tom and Jerry’ that my young friends
delighted in; so as soon as possible I sought obscurity and peace in ‘M.
J.’ Much to my surprise and annoyance the initials proved to be little
better, for they became at once the biggest sort of whet to people’s
curiosity. Naturally, the more determined persistent inquirers were to
know the name, the more determined I became that they shouldn’t. All
very silly and very foolish, of course. Certainly it seems so now,” he
finished.

Billy was silent. She was trying to find something, _anything_, to say,
when Arkwright began speaking again, still in that dull, hopeless voice
that Billy thought would break her heart.

“As for the ‘Mary Jane’--that was another foolishness, of course. My
small brothers and sisters originated it; others followed, on occasion,
even Calderwell. Perhaps you did not know, but he was the friend who, by
his laughing question, ‘Why don’t you, Mary Jane?’ put into my head the
crazy scheme of writing to Aunt Hannah and letting her think I was a
real Mary Jane. You see what I stooped to do, Miss Neilson, for the
chance of meeting and knowing you.”

Billy gave a low cry. She had suddenly remembered the beginning of
Arkwright’s story. For the first time she realized that he had been
talking then about herself, not Alice Greggory.

“But you don’t mean that you--cared--that I was the--” She could not
finish.

Arkwright turned from the mantel with a gesture of utter despair.

“Yes, I cared then. I had heard of you. I had sung your songs. I was
determined to meet you. So I came--and met you. After that I was more
determined than ever to win you. Perhaps you see, now, why I was so
blind to--to any other possibility. But it doesn’t do any good--to talk
like this. I understand now. Only, please, don’t blame yourself,” he
begged as he saw her eyes fill with tears. The next moment he was gone.

Billy had turned away and was crying softly, so she did not see him go.



CHAPTER XXVII. THE THING THAT WAS THE TRUTH


Bertram called that evening. Billy had no story now to tell--nothing
of the interrupted romance between Alice Greggory and Arkwright. Billy
carefully, indeed, avoided mentioning Arkwright’s name.

Ever since the man’s departure that afternoon, Billy had been
frantically trying to assure herself that she was not to blame; that she
would not be supposed to know he cared for her; that it had all been as
he said it was--his foolish blindness. But even when she had partially
comforted herself by these assertions, she could not by any means escape
the haunting vision of the man’s stern-set, suffering face as she had
seen it that afternoon; nor could she keep from weeping at the memory of
the words he had said, and at the thought that never again could their
pleasant friendship be quite the same--if, indeed, there could be any
friendship at all between them.

But if Billy expected that her red eyes, pale cheeks, and generally
troubled appearance and unquiet manner were to be passed unnoticed by
her lover’s keen eyes that evening, she found herself much mistaken.

“Sweetheart, what _is_ the matter?” demanded Bertram resolutely, at
last, when his more indirect questions had been evasively turned aside.
“You can’t make me think there isn’t something the trouble, because I
know there is!”

“Well, then, there is, dear,” smiled Billy, tearfully; “but please just
don’t let us talk of it. I--I want to forget it. Truly I do.”

“But I want to know so _I_ can forget it,” persisted Bertram. “What is
it? Maybe I could help.”

She shook her head with a little frightened cry.

“No, no--you can’t help--really.”

“But, sweetheart, you don’t know. Perhaps I could. Won’t you _tell_ me
about it?”

Billy looked distressed.

“I can’t, dear--truly. You see, it isn’t quite mine--to tell.”

“Not yours!”

“Not--entirely.”

“But it makes you feel bad?”

“Yes--very.”

“Then can’t I know that part?”

“Oh, no--no, indeed, no! You see--it wouldn’t be fair--to the other.”

Bertram stared a little. Then his mouth set into stern lines.

“Billy, what are you talking about? Seems to me I have a right to know.”

Billy hesitated. To her mind, a girl who would tell of the unrequited
love of a man for herself, was unspeakably base. To tell Bertram
Arkwright’s love story was therefore impossible. Yet, in some way, she
must set Bertram’s mind at rest.

“Dearest,” she began slowly, her eyes wistfully pleading, “just what it
is, I can’t tell you. In a way it’s another’s secret, and I don’t feel
that I have the right to tell it. It’s just something that I learned
this afternoon.”

“But it has made you cry!”

“Yes. It made me feel very unhappy.”

“Then--it was something you couldn’t help?”

To Bertram’s surprise, the face he was watching so intently flushed
scarlet.

“No, I couldn’t help it--now; though I might have--once.” Billy spoke
this last just above her breath. Then she went on, beseechingly:
“Bertram, please, please don’t talk of it any more. It--it’s just
spoiling our happy evening together!”

Bertram bit his lip, and drew a long sigh.

“All right, dear; you know best, of course--since I don’t know
_anything_ about it,” he finished a little stiffly.

Billy began to talk then very brightly of Aunt Hannah and her shawls,
and of a visit she had made to Cyril and Marie that morning.

“And, do you know? Aunt Hannah’s clock _has_ done a good turn, at last,
and justified its existence. Listen,” she cried gayly. “Marie had a
letter from her mother’s Cousin Jane. Cousin Jane couldn’t sleep nights,
because she was always lying awake to find out just what time it was;
so Marie had written her about Aunt Hannah’s clock. And now this Cousin
Jane has fixed _her_ clock, and she sleeps like a top, just because she
knows there’ll never be but half an hour that she doesn’t know what time
it is!”

Bertram smiled, and murmured a polite “Well, I’m sure that’s fine!”; but
the words were plainly abstracted, and the frown had not left his brow.
Nor did it quite leave till some time later, when Billy, in answer to a
question of his about another operetta, cried, with a shudder:

“Mercy, I hope not, dear! I don’t want to _hear_ the word ‘operetta’
again for a year!”

Bertram smiled, then, broadly. He, too, would be quite satisfied not
to hear the word “operetta” for a year. Operetta, to Bertram, meant
interruptions, interferences, and the constant presence of Arkwright,
the Greggorys, and innumerable creatures who wished to rehearse or to
change wigs--all of which Bertram abhorred. No wonder, therefore, that
he smiled, and that the frown disappeared from his brow. He thought he
saw, ahead, serene, blissful days for Billy and himself.

As the days, however, began to pass, one by one, Bertram Henshaw found
them to be anything but serene and blissful. The operetta, with its
rehearsals and its interruptions, was gone, certainly; but he was
becoming seriously troubled about Billy.

Billy did not act natural. Sometimes she seemed like her old self; and
he breathed more freely, telling himself that his fears were groundless.
Then would come the haunting shadow to her eyes, the droop to her mouth,
and the nervousness to her manner that he so dreaded. Worse yet, all
this seemed to be connected in some strange way with Arkwright. He found
this out by accident one day. She had been talking and laughing brightly
about something, when he chanced to introduce Arkwright’s name.

“By the way, where is Mary Jane these days?” he asked then.

“I don’t know, I’m sure. He hasn’t been here lately,” murmured Billy,
reaching for a book on the table.

At a peculiar something in her voice, he had looked up quickly, only to
find, to his great surprise, that her face showed a painful flush as she
bent over the book in her hand.

He had said nothing more at the time, but he had not forgotten. Several
times, after that, he had introduced the man’s name, and never had it
failed to bring a rush of color, a biting of the lip, or a quick change
of position followed always by the troubled eyes and nervous manner that
he had learned to dread. He noticed then that never, of her own free
will, did she herself mention the man; never did she speak of him with
the old frank lightness as “Mary Jane.”

By casual questions asked from time to time, Bertram had learned that
Arkwright never came there now, and that the song-writing together had
been given up. Curiously enough, this discovery, which would once have
filled Bertram with joy, served now only to deepen his distress. That
there was anything inconsistent in the fact that he was more frightened
now at the man’s absence than he had been before at his presence,
did not occur to him. He knew only that he was frightened, and badly
frightened.

Bertram had not forgotten the evening after the operetta, and Billy’s
tear-stained face on that occasion. He dated the whole thing, in fact,
from that evening. He fell to wondering one day if that, too, had
anything to do with Arkwright. He determined then to find out.
Shamelessly--for the good of the cause--he set a trap for Billy’s unwary
feet.

Very adroitly one day he led the talk straight to Arkwright; then he
asked abruptly:

“Where is the chap, I wonder! Why, he hasn’t shown up once since the
operetta, has he?”

Billy, always truthful,--and just now always embarrassed when
Arkwright’s name was mentioned,--walked straight into the trap.

“Oh, yes; well, he was here once--the day after the operetta. I haven’t
seen him since.”

Bertram answered a light something, but his face grew a little white.
Now that the trap had been sprung and the victim caught, he almost
wished that he had not set any trap at all.

He knew now it was true. Arkwright had been with Billy the day after the
operetta, and her tears and her distress that evening had been caused by
something Arkwright had said. It was Arkwright’s secret that she could
not tell. It was Arkwright to whom she must be fair. It was Arkwright’s
sorrow that she “could not help--now.”

Naturally, with these tools in his hands, and aided by days of brooding
and nights of sleeplessness, it did not take Bertram long to fashion The
Thing that finally loomed before him as The Truth.

He understood it all now. Music had conquered. Billy and Arkwright had
found that they loved each other. On the day after the operetta, they
had met, and had had some sort of scene together--doubtless Arkwright
had declared his love. That was the “secret” that Billy could not tell
and be “fair.” Billy, of course,--loyal little soul that she was,--had
sent him away at once. Was her hand not already pledged? That was why
she could not “help it-now.” (Bertram writhed in agony at the thought.)
Since that meeting Arkwright had not been near the house. Billy had
found, however, that her heart had gone with Arkwright; hence the shadow
in her eyes, the nervousness in her manner, and the embarrassment that
she always showed at the mention of his name.

That Billy was still outwardly loyal to himself, and that she still kept
to her engagement, did not surprise Bertram in the least. That was like
Billy. Bertram had not forgotten how, less than a year before, this same
Billy had held herself loyal and true to an engagement with William,
because a wretched mistake all around had caused her to give her promise
to be William’s wife under the impression that she was carrying out
William’s dearest wish. Bertram remembered her face as it had looked all
those long summer days while her heart was being slowly broken; and he
thought he could see that same look in her eyes now. All of which only
goes to prove with what woeful skill Bertram had fashioned this Thing
that was looming before him as The Truth.

The exhibition of “The Bohemian Ten” was to open with a private view
on the evening of the twentieth of March. Bertram Henshaw’s one
contribution was to be his portrait of Miss Marguerite Winthrop--the
piece of work that had come to mean so much to him; the piece of work
upon which already he felt the focus of multitudes of eyes.

Miss Winthrop was in Boston now, and it was during these early March
days that Bertram was supposed to be putting in his best work on the
portrait; but, unfortunately, it was during these same early March days
that he was engaged, also, in fashioning The Thing--and the two did not
harmonize.

The Thing, indeed, was a jealous creature, and would brook no rival.
She filled his eyes with horrid visions, and his brain with sickening
thoughts. Between him and his model she flung a veil of fear; and she
set his hand to trembling, and his brush to making blunders with the
paints on his palette.

Bertram saw The Thing, and saw, too, the grievous result of her
presence. Despairingly he fought against her and her work; but The Thing
had become full grown now, and was The Truth. Hence she was not to be
banished. She even, in a taunting way, seemed sometimes to be justifying
her presence, for she reminded him:

“After all, what’s the difference? What do you care for this, or
anything again if Billy is lost to you?”

But the artist told himself fiercely that he did care--that he must
care--for his work; and he struggled--how he struggled!--to ignore the
horrid visions and the sickening thoughts, and to pierce the veil of
fear so that his hand might be steady and his brush regain its skill.

And so he worked. Sometimes he let his work remain. Sometimes one hour
saw only the erasing of what the hour before had wrought. Sometimes the
elusive something in Marguerite Winthrop’s face seemed right at the tip
of his brush--on the canvas, even. He saw success then so plainly that
for a moment it almost--but not quite--blotted out The Thing. At other
times that elusive something on the high-bred face of his model was a
veritable will-o’-the-wisp, refusing to be caught and held, even in his
eye. The artist knew then that his picture would be hung with Anderson’s
and Fullam’s.

But the portrait was, irrefutably, nearing completion, and it was to be
exhibited the twentieth of the month. Bertram knew these for facts.



CHAPTER XXVIII. BILLY TAKES HER TURN


If for Billy those first twenty days of March did not carry quite the
tragedy they contained for Bertram, they were, nevertheless, not really
happy ones. She was vaguely troubled by a curious something in Bertram’s
behavior that she could not name; she was grieved over Arkwright’s
sorrow, and she was constantly probing her own past conduct to see
if anywhere she could find that she was to blame for that sorrow. She
missed, too, undeniably, Arkwright’s cheery presence, and the charm
and inspiration of his music. Nor was she finding it easy to give
satisfactory answers to the questions Aunt Hannah, William, and Bertram
so often asked her as to where Mary Jane was.

Even her music was little comfort to her these days. She was not
writing anything. There was no song in her heart to tempt her to write.
Arkwright’s new words that he had brought her were out of the question,
of course. They had been put away with the manuscript of the completed
song, which had not, fortunately, gone to the publishers. Billy had
waited, intending to send them together. She was so glad, now, that she
had waited. Just once, since Arkwright’s last call, she had tried to
sing that song. But she had stopped at the end of the first two lines.
The full meaning of those words, as coming from Arkwright, had swept
over her then, and she had snatched up the manuscript and hidden it
under the bottom pile of music in her cabinet ... And she had presumed
to sing that love song to Bertram!

Arkwright had written Billy once--a kind, courteous, manly note that had
made her cry. He had begged her again not to blame herself, and he had
said that he hoped he should be strong enough sometime to wish to call
occasionally--if she were willing--and renew their pleasant hours with
their music; but, for the present, he knew there was nothing for him to
do but to stay away. He had signed himself “Michael Jeremiah Arkwright”;
and to Billy that was the most pathetic thing in the letter--it sounded
so hopeless and dreary to one who knew the jaunty “M. J.”

Alice Greggory, Billy saw frequently. Billy and Aunt Hannah were great
friends with the Greggorys now, and had been ever since the Greggorys’
ten-days’ visit at Hillside. The cheery little cripple, with the gentle
tap, tap, tap of her crutches, had won everybody’s heart the very
first day; and Alice was scarcely less of a favorite, after the sunny
friendliness of Hillside had thawed her stiff reserve into naturalness.

Billy had little to say to Alice Greggory of Arkwright. Billy was no
longer trying to play Cupid’s assistant. The Cause, for which she had
so valiantly worked, had been felled by Arkwright’s own hand--but that
there were still some faint stirrings of life in it was evidenced by
Billy’s secret delight when one day Alice Greggory chanced to mention
that Arkwright had called the night before upon her and her mother.

“He brought us news of our old home,” she explained a little hurriedly,
to Billy. “He had heard from his mother, and he thought some things she
said would be interesting to us.”

“Of course,” murmured Billy, carefully excluding from her voice any hint
of the delight she felt, but hoping, all the while, that Alice would
continue the subject.

Alice, however, had nothing more to say; and Billy was left in
entire ignorance of what the news was that Arkwright had brought.
She suspected, though, that it had something to do with Alice’s
father--certainly she hoped that it had; for if Arkwright had called to
tell it, it must be good.

Billy had found a new home for the Greggorys; although at first they had
drawn sensitively back, and had said that they preferred to remain where
they were, they had later gratefully accepted it. A little couple from
South Boston, to whom Billy had given a two weeks’ outing the summer
before, had moved into town and taken a flat in the South End. They had
two extra rooms which they had told Billy they would like to let for
light house-keeping, if only they knew just the right people to take
into such close quarters with themselves. Billy at once thought of the
Greggorys, and spoke of them. The little couple were delighted, and the
Greggorys were scarcely less so when they at last became convinced that
only a very little more money than they were already paying would give
themselves a much pleasanter home, and would at the same time be a real
boon to two young people who were trying to meet expenses. So the change
was made, and general happiness all round had resulted--so much so, that
Bertram had said to Billy, when he heard of it:

“It looks as if this was a case where your cake is frosted on both
sides.”

“Nonsense! This isn’t frosting--it’s business,” Billy had laughed.

“And the new pupils you have found for Miss Alice--they’re business,
too, I suppose?”

“Certainly,” retorted Billy, with decision. Then she had given a low
laugh and said: “Mercy! If Alice Greggory thought it was anything _but_
business, I verily believe she would refuse every one of the new pupils,
and begin to-night to carry back the tables and chairs herself to those
wretched rooms she left last month!”

Bertram had smiled, but the smile had been a fleeting one, and the
brooding look of gloom that Billy had noticed so frequently, of late,
had come back to his eyes.

Billy was not a little disturbed over Bertram these days. He did not
seem to be his natural, cheery self at all. He talked little, and what
he did say seldom showed a trace of his usually whimsical way of putting
things. He was kindness itself to her, and seemed particularly anxious
to please her in every way; but she frequently found his eyes fixed on
her with a sombre questioning that almost frightened her. The more she
thought of it, the more she wondered what the question was, that he did
not dare to ask; and whether it was of herself or himself that he would
ask it--if he did dare. Then, with benumbing force, one day, a possible
solution of the mystery came to her, he had found out that it was true
(what all his friends had declared of him)--he did not really love any
girl, except to paint!

The minute this thought came to her, Billy thrust it indignantly away.
It was disloyal to Bertram and unworthy of herself, even to think such
a thing. She told herself then that it was only the portrait of Miss
Winthrop that was troubling him. She knew that he was worried over that.
He had confessed to her that actually sometimes he was beginning to fear
his hand had lost its cunning. As if that were not enough to bring the
gloom to any man’s face--to any artist’s!

No sooner, however, had Billy arrived at this point in her mental
argument, than a new element entered--her old lurking jealousy, of which
she was heartily ashamed, but which she had never yet been able quite to
subdue; her jealousy of the beautiful girl with the beautiful name (not
Billy), whose portrait had needed so much time and so many sittings to
finish. What if Bertram had found that he loved _her?_ What if that
were why his hand had lost its cunning--because, though loving her, he
realized that he was bound to another, Billy herself?

This thought, too, Billy cast from her at once as again disloyal and
unworthy. But both thoughts, having once entered her brain, had made for
themselves roads over which the second passing was much easier than the
first--as Billy found to her sorrow. Certainly, as the days went by,
and as Bertram’s face and manner became more and more a tragedy of
suffering, Billy found it increasingly difficult to keep those
thoughts from wearing their roads of suspicion into horrid deep ruts of
certainty.

Only with William and Marie, now, could Billy escape from it all. With
William she sought new curios and catalogued the old. With Marie she
beat eggs and whipped cream in the shining kitchen, and tried to think
that nothing in the world mattered except that the cake in the oven
should not fall.



CHAPTER XXIX. KATE WRITES A LETTER


Bertram feared that he knew, before the portrait was hung, that it was
a failure. He was sure that he knew it on the evening of the twentieth
when he encountered the swiftly averted eyes of some of his artist
friends, and saw the perplexed frown on the faces of others. But he
knew, afterwards, that he did not really know it--till he read the
newspapers during the next few days.

There was praise--oh, yes; the faint praise that kills. There was some
adverse criticism, too; but it was of the light, insincere variety that
is given to mediocre work by unimportant artists. Then, here and there,
appeared the signed critiques of the men whose opinion counted--and
Bertram knew that he had failed. Neither as a work of art, nor as a
likeness, was the portrait the success that Henshaw’s former work would
seem to indicate that it should have been. Indeed, as one caustic pen
put it, if this were to be taken as a sample of what was to follow--then
the famous originator of “The Face of a Girl” had “a most distinguished
future behind him.”

Seldom, if ever before, had an exhibited portrait attracted so much
attention. As Bertram had said, uncounted eyes were watching for it
before it was hung, because it was a portrait of the noted beauty,
Marguerite Winthrop, and because two other well-known artists had failed
where he, Bertram Henshaw, was hoping to succeed. After it was hung, and
the uncounted eyes had seen it--either literally, or through the eyes
of the critics--interest seemed rather to grow than to lessen, for other
uncounted eyes wanted to see what all the fuss was about, anyway. And
when these eyes had seen, their owners talked. Nor did they, by any
means, all talk against the portrait. Some were as loud in its praise as
were others in its condemnation; all of which, of course, but helped to
attract more eyes to the cause of it all.

For Bertram and his friends these days were, naturally, trying ones.
William finally dreaded to open his newspaper. (It had become the
fashion, when murders and divorces were scarce, occasionally to
“feature” somebody’s opinion of the Henshaw portrait, on the first
page--something that had almost never been known to happen before.)
Cyril, according to Marie, played “perfectly awful things on his piano
every day, now.” Aunt Hannah had said “Oh, my grief and conscience!”
 so many times that it melted now into a wordless groan whenever a new
unfriendly criticism of the portrait met her indignant eyes.

Of all Bertram’s friends, Billy, perhaps not unnaturally, was the
angriest. Not only did she, after a time, refuse to read the papers,
but she refused even to allow certain ones to be brought into the house,
foolish and unreasonable as she knew this to be.

As to the artist himself, Bertram’s face showed drawn lines and his eyes
sombre shadows, but his words and manner carried a stolid indifference
that to Billy was at once heartbreaking and maddening.

“But, Bertram, why don’t you do something? Why don’t you say something?
Why don’t you act something?” she burst out one day.

The artist shrugged his shoulders.

“But, my dear, what can I say, or do, or act?” he asked.

“I don’t know, of course,” sighed Billy. “But I know what I’d like to
do. I should like to go out and--fight somebody!”

So fierce were words and manner, coupled as they were with a pair of
gentle eyes ablaze and two soft little hands doubled into menacing
fists, that Bertram laughed.

“What a fiery little champion it is, to be sure,” he said tenderly. “But
as if fighting could do any good--in this case!”

Billy’s tense muscles relaxed. Her eyes filled with tears.

“No, I don’t suppose it would,” she choked, beginning to cry, so that
Bertram had to turn comforter.

“Come, come, dear,” he begged; “don’t take it so to heart. It’s not
so bad, after all. I’ve still my good right hand left, and we’ll hope
there’s something in it yet--that’ll be worth while.”

“But _this_ one isn’t bad,” stormed Billy. “It’s splendid! I’m sure, I
think it’s a b-beautiful portrait, and I don’t see _what_ people mean by
talking so about it!”

Bertram shook his head. His eyes grew sombre again.

“Thank you, dear. But I know--and you know, really--that it isn’t a
splendid portrait. I’ve done lots better work than that.”

“Then why don’t they look at those, and let this alone?” wailed Billy,
with indignation.

“Because I deliberately put up this for them to see,” smiled the artist,
wearily.

Billy sighed, and twisted in her chair.

“What does--Mr. Winthrop say?” she asked at last, in a faint voice.

Bertram lifted his head.

“Mr. Winthrop’s been a trump all through, dear. He’s already insisted on
paying for this--and he’s ordered another.”

“Another!”

“Yes. The old fellow never minces his words, as you may know. He came
to me one day, put his hand on my shoulder, and said tersely: ‘Will you
give me another, same terms? Go in, boy, and win. Show ‘em! I lost
the first ten thousand I made. I didn’t the next!’ That’s all he said.
Before I could even choke out an answer he was gone. Gorry! talk about
his having a ‘heart of stone’! I don’t believe another man in the
country would have done that--and done it in the way he did--in the face
of all this talk,” finished Bertram, his eyes luminous with feeling.

Billy hesitated.

“Perhaps--his daughter--influenced him--some.”

“Perhaps,” nodded Bertram. “She, too, has been very kind, all the way
through.”

Billy hesitated again.

“But I thought--it was going so splendidly,” she faltered, in a
half-stifled voice.

“So it was--at the first.”

“Then what--ailed it, at the last, do you suppose?” Billy was holding
her breath till he should answer.

The man got to his feet.

“Billy, don’t--don’t ask me,” he begged. “Please don’t let’s talk of
it any more. It can’t do any good! I just flunked--that’s all. My
hand failed me. Maybe I tried too hard. Maybe I was tired. Maybe
something--troubled me. Never mind, dear, what it was. It can do no good
even to think of that--now. So just let’s--drop it, please, dear,” he
finished, his face working with emotion.

And Billy dropped it--so far as words were concerned; but she could not
drop it from her thoughts--specially after Kate’s letter came.

Kate’s letter was addressed to Billy, and it said, after speaking of
various other matters:

“And now about poor Bertram’s failure.” (Billy frowned. In Billy’s
presence no one was allowed to say “Bertram’s failure”; but a letter
has a most annoying privilege of saying what it pleases without let or
hindrance, unless one tears it up--and a letter destroyed unread remains
always such a tantalizing mystery of possibilities! So Billy let the
letter talk.) “Of course we have heard of it away out here. I do wish if
Bertram _must_ paint such famous people, he would manage to flatter them
up--in the painting, I mean, of course--enough so that it might pass for
a success!

“The technical part of all this criticism I don’t pretend to understand
in the least; but from what I hear and read, he must, indeed, have made
a terrible mess of it, and of course I’m very sorry--and some surprised,
too, for usually he paints such pretty pictures!

“Still, on the other hand, Billy, I’m not surprised. William says that
Bertram has been completely out of fix over something, and as gloomy as
an owl, for weeks past; and of course, under those circumstances, the
poor boy could not be expected to do good work. Now William, being a
man, is not supposed to understand what the trouble is. But I, being a
woman, can see through a pane of glass when it’s held right up before
me; and I can guess, of course, that a woman is at the bottom of it--she
always is!--and that you, being his special fancy at the moment” (Billy
almost did tear the letter now--but not quite), “are that woman.

“Now, Billy, you don’t like such frank talk, of course; but, on the
other hand, I know you do not want to ruin the dear boy’s career. So,
for heaven’s sake, if you two have been having one of those quarrels
that lovers so delight in--do, please, for the good of the cause, make
up quick, or else quarrel harder and break it off entirely--which,
honestly, would be the better way, I think, all around.

“There, there, my dear child, don’t bristle up! I am very fond of you,
and would dearly love to have you for a sister--if you’d only take
William, as you should! But, as you very well know, I never did approve
of this last match at all, for either of your sakes.

“He can’t make you happy, my dear, and you can’t make him happy.
Bertram never was--and never will be--a marrying man. He’s too
temperamental--too thoroughly wrapped up in his Art. Girls have never
meant anything to him but a beautiful picture to paint. And they never
will. They can’t. He’s made that way. Listen! I can prove it to you. Up
to this winter he’s always been a care-free, happy, jolly fellow, and
you _know_ what beautiful work he has done. Never before has he tied
himself to any one girl till last fall. Then you two entered into this
absurd engagement.

“Now what has it been since? William wrote me himself not a fortnight
ago that he’d been worried to death over Bertram for weeks past,
he’s been so moody, so irritable, so fretted over his work, so unlike
himself. And his picture has _failed_ dismally. Of course William
doesn’t understand; but I do. I know you’ve probably quarrelled, or
something. You know how flighty and unreliable you can be sometimes,
Billy, and I don’t say that to mean anything against you, either--that’s
_your_ way. You’re just as temperamental in your art, music, as Bertram
is in his. You’re utterly unsuited to him. If Bertram is to marry
_anybody_, it should be some quiet, staid, sensible girl who would be
a _help_ to him. But when I think of you two flyaway flutterbudgets
marrying--!

“Now, for heaven’s sake, Billy, _do_ make up or something--and do it
now. Don’t, for pity’s sake, let Bertram ever put out another such a
piece of work to shame us all like this. Do you want to ruin his career?

“Faithfully yours,

“KATE HARTWELL.

“P. S. _I_ think William’s the one for you. He’s devoted to you, and
his quiet, sensible affection is just what your temperament needs. I
_always_ thought William was the one for you. Think it over.

“P. S. No. 2. You can see by the above that it isn’t you I’m objecting
to, my dear. It’s just _you-and-Bertram_.

“K.”



CHAPTER XXX. “I’VE HINDERED HIM”


Billy was shaking with anger and terror by the time she had finished
reading Kate’s letter. Anger was uppermost at the moment, and with one
sweeping wrench of her trembling fingers she tore the closely written
sheets straight through the middle, and flung them into the little
wicker basket by her desk. Then she went down-stairs and played her
noisiest, merriest Tarantella, and tried to see how fast she could make
her fingers fly.

But Billy could not, of course, play tarantellas all day; and even while
she did play them she could not forget that waste-basket up-stairs, and
the horror it contained. The anger was still uppermost, but the terror
was prodding her at every turn, and demanding to know just what it was
that Kate had written in that letter, anyway. It is not strange then,
perhaps, that before two hours passed, Billy went up-stairs, took the
letter from the basket, matched together the torn half-sheets and forced
her shrinking eyes to read every word again-just to satisfy that terror
which would not be silenced.

At the end of the second reading, Billy reminded herself with stern
calmness that it was only Kate, after all; that nobody ought to mind
what Kate said; that certainly _she_, Billy, ought not--after the
experience she had already had with her unpleasant interference! Kate
did not know what she was talking about, anyway. This was only another
case of her trying “to manage.” She did so love to manage--everything!

At this point Billy got out her pen and paper and wrote to Kate.

It was a formal, cold little letter, not at all the sort that Billy’s
friends usually received. It thanked Kate for her advice, and for
her “kind willingness” to have Billy for a sister; but it hinted that
perhaps Kate did not realize that as long as Billy was the one who would
have to _live_ with the chosen man, it would be pleasanter to take the
one Billy loved, which happened in this case to be Bertram--not William.
As for any “quarrel” being the cause of whatever fancied trouble there
was with the new picture--the letter scouted that idea in no uncertain
terms. There had been no suggestion of a quarrel even once since the
engagement.

Then Billy signed her name and took the letter out to post immediately.

For the first few minutes after the letter had been dropped into the
green box at the corner, Billy held her head high, and told herself that
the matter was now closed. She had sent Kate a courteous, dignified,
conclusive, effectual answer, and she thought with much satisfaction of
the things she had said.

Very soon, however, she began to think--not so much of what _she_
had said--but of what Kate had said. Many of Kate’s sentences were
unpleasantly vivid in her mind. They seemed, indeed, to stand out in
letters of flame, and they began to burn, and burn, and burn. These were
some of them:

“William says that Bertram has been completely out of fix over
something, and as gloomy as an owl for weeks past.”

“A woman is at the bottom of it--... you are that woman.”

“You can’t make him happy.”

“Bertram never was--and never will be--a marrying man.”

“Girls have never meant anything to him but a beautiful picture to
paint. And they never will.”

“Up to this winter he’s always been a carefree, happy, jolly fellow,
and you _know_ what beautiful work he has done. Never before has he tied
himself to any one girl until last fall.”

“Now what has it been since?”

“He’s been so moody, so irritable, so fretted over his work, so unlike
himself; and his picture has failed, dismally.”

“Do you want to ruin his career?”

Billy began to see now that she had not really answered Kate’s letter at
all. The matter was not closed. Her reply had been, perhaps, courteous
and dignified--but it had not been conclusive nor effectual.

Billy had reached home now, and she was crying. Bertram _had_ acted
strangely, of late. Bertram _had_ seemed troubled over something. His
picture _had_--With a little shudder Billy tossed aside these thoughts,
and dug at her teary eyes with a determined hand. Fiercely she told
herself that the matter _was_ settled. Very scornfully she declared that
it was “only Kate,” after all, and that she _would not_ let Kate make
her unhappy again! Forthwith she picked up a current magazine and began
to read.

As it chanced, however, even here Billy found no peace; for the first
article she opened to was headed in huge black type:


“MARRIAGE AND THE ARTISTIC TEMPERAMENT.”


With a little cry Billy flung the magazine far from her, and picked up
another. But even “The Elusiveness of Chopin,” which she found here,
could not keep her thoughts nor her eyes from wandering to the discarded
thing in the corner, lying ignominiously face down with crumpled,
out-flung leaves.

Billy knew that in the end she should go over and pick that magazine
up, and read that article from beginning to end. She was not surprised,
therefore, when she did it--but she was not any the happier for having
done it.

The writer of the article did not approve of marriage and the artistic
temperament. He said the artist belonged to his Art, and to posterity
through his Art. The essay fairly bristled with many-lettered words and
high-sounding phrases, few of which Billy really understood. She did
understand enough, however, to feel, guiltily, when the thing was
finished, that already she had married Bertram, and by so doing had
committed a Crime. She had slain Art, stifled Ambition, destroyed
Inspiration, and been a nuisance generally. In consequence of which
Bertram would henceforth and forevermore be doomed to Littleness.

Naturally, in this state of mind, and with this vision before her, Billy
was anything but her bright, easy self when she met Bertram an hour or
two later. Naturally, too, Bertram, still the tormented victim of the
bugaboo his jealous fears had fashioned, was just in the mood to
place the worst possible construction on his sweetheart’s very evident
unhappiness. With sighs, unspoken questions, and frequently averted
eyes, therefore, the wretched evening passed, a pitiful misery to them
both.

During the days that followed, Billy thought that the world itself
must be in league with Kate, so often did she encounter Kate’s letter
masquerading under some thin disguise. She did not stop to realize that
because she was so afraid she _would_ find it, she _did_ find it. In
the books she read, in the plays she saw, in the chance words she heard
spoken by friend or stranger--always there was something to feed her
fears in one way or another. Even in a yellowed newspaper that had
covered the top shelf in her closet she found one day a symposium
on whether or not an artist’s wife should be an artist; and she
shuddered--but she read every opinion given.

Some writers said no, and some, yes; and some said it all depended--on
the artist and his wife. Billy found much food for thought, some for
amusement, and a little that made for peace of mind. On the whole
it opened up a new phase of the matter, perhaps. At all events, upon
finishing it she almost sobbed:

“One would think that just because I write a song now and then, I was
going to let Bertram starve, and go with holes in his socks and no
buttons on his clothes!”

It was that afternoon that Billy went to see Marie; but even there she
did not escape, for the gentle Marie all unknowingly added her mite to
the woeful whole.

Billy found Marie in tears.

“Why, Marie!” she cried in dismay.

“Sh-h!” warned Marie, turning agonized eyes toward the closed door of
Cyril’s den.

“But, dear, what is it?” begged Billy, with no less dismay, but with
greater caution.

“Sh-h!” admonished Marie again.

On tiptoe, then, she led the way to a room at the other end of the tiny
apartment. Once there; she explained in a more natural tone of voice:

“Cyril’s at work on a new piece for the piano.”

“Well, what if he is?” demanded Billy. “That needn’t make you cry, need
it?”

“Oh, no--no, indeed,” demurred Marie, in a shocked voice.

“Well, then, what is it?”

Marie hesitated; then, with the abandon of a hurt child that longs for
sympathy, she sobbed:

“It--it’s just that I’m afraid, after all, that I’m not good enough for
Cyril.”

Billy stared frankly.

“Not _good_ enough, Marie Henshaw! Whatever in the world do you mean?”

“Well, not good _for_ him, then. Listen! To-day, I know, in lots of
ways I must have disappointed him. First, he put on some socks that I’d
darned. They were the first since our marriage that I’d found to
darn, and I’d been so proud and--and happy while I _was_ darning them.
But--but he took ‘em off right after breakfast and threw ‘em in a
corner. Then he put on a new pair, and said that I--I needn’t darn any
more; that it made--bunches. Billy, _my darns--bunches!_” Marie’s face
and voice were tragic.

“Nonsense, dear! Don’t let that fret you,” comforted Billy, promptly,
trying not to laugh too hard. “It wasn’t _your_ darns; it was just
darns--anybody’s darns. Cyril won’t wear darned socks. Aunt Hannah told
me so long ago, and I said then there’d be a tragedy when _you_ found it
out. So don’t worry over that.”

“Oh, but that isn’t all,” moaned Marie. “Listen! You know how quiet he
must have everything when he’s composing--and he ought to have it, too!
But I forgot, this morning, and put on some old shoes that didn’t have
any rubber heels, and I ran the carpet sweeper, and I rattled tins in
the kitchen. But I never thought a thing until he opened his door and
asked me _please_ to change my shoes and let the--the confounded dirt
go, and didn’t I have any dishes in the house but what were made of that
abominable tin s-stuff,” she finished in a wail of misery.

Billy burst into a ringing laugh, but Marie’s aghast face and upraised
hand speedily reduced it to a convulsive giggle.

“You dear child! Cyril’s always like that when he’s composing,” soothed
Billy. “I supposed you knew it, dear. Don’t you fret! Run along and make
him his favorite pudding, and by night both of you will have forgotten
there ever were such things in the world as tins and shoes and carpet
sweepers that clatter.”

Marie shook her head. Her dismal face did not relax.

“You don’t understand,” she moaned. “It’s myself. I’ve _hindered_ him!”
 She brought out the word with an agony of slow horror. “And only to-day
I read-here, look!” she faltered, going to the table and picking up with
shaking hands a magazine.

Billy recognized it by the cover at once--another like it had been flung
not so long ago by her own hand into the corner. She was not surprised,
therefore, to see very soon at the end of Marie’s trembling finger:

“Marriage and the Artistic Temperament.”

Billy did not give a ringing laugh this time. She gave an involuntary
little shudder, though she tried valiantly to turn it all off with a
light word of scorn, and a cheery pat on Marie’s heaving shoulders. But
she went home very soon; and it was plain to be seen that her visit to
Marie had not brought her peace.

Billy knew Kate’s letter, by heart, now, both in the original, and in
its different versions, and she knew that, despite her struggles, she
was being forced straight toward Kate’s own verdict: that she, Billy,
_was_ the cause, in some way, of the deplorable change in Bertram’s
appearance, manner, and work. Before she would quite surrender to this
heart-sickening belief, however, she determined to ask Bertram himself.
Falteringly, but resolutely, therefore, one day, she questioned him.

“Bertram, once you hinted that the picture did not go right because you
were troubled over something; and I’ve been wondering--was it about--me,
in any way, that you were troubled?”

Billy had her answer before the man spoke. She had it in the quick
terror that sprang to his eyes, and the dull red that swept from his
neck to his forehead. His reply, so far as words went did not count, for
it evaded everything and told nothing. But Billy knew without words.
She knew, too, what she must do. For the time being she took Bertram’s
evasive answer as he so evidently wished it to be taken; but that
evening, after he had gone, she wrote him a little note and broke the
engagement. So heartbroken was she--and so fearful was she that he
should suspect this--that her note, when completed, was a cold little
thing of few words, which carried no hint that its very coldness was but
the heart-break in the disguise of pride.

This was like Billy in all ways. Billy, had she lived in the days of
the Christian martyrs, would have been the first to walk with head erect
into the Arena of Sacrifice. The arena now was just everyday living, the
lions were her own devouring misery, and the cause was Bertram’s best
good.

From Bertram’s own self she had it now--that she had been the cause of
his being troubled; so she could doubt no longer. The only part that was
uncertain was the reason why he had been troubled. Whether his bond to
her had become irksome because of his love for another, or because of
his love for no girl--except to paint, Billy did not know. But that it
was irksome she did not doubt now. Besides, as if she were going to slay
his Art, stifle his Ambition, destroy his Inspiration, and be a nuisance
generally just so that _she_ might be happy! Indeed, no! Hence she broke
the engagement.

This was the letter:


     “DEAR BERTRAM:--You won’t make the
     move, so I must. I knew, from the way you spoke
     to-day, that it _was_ about me that you were
     troubled, even though you generously tried to
     make me think it was not. And so the picture did
     not go well.

     “Now, dear, we have not been happy together
     lately. You have seen it; so have I. I fear our
     engagement was a mistake, so I’m going to send
     back your ring to-morrow, and I’m writing this
     letter to-night. Please don’t try to see me just
     yet. You _know_ what I am doing is best--all
     round.
               “Always your friend,
                       “BILLY.”



CHAPTER XXXI. FLIGHT


Billy feared if she did not mail the letter at once she would not have
the courage to mail it at all. So she slipped down-stairs very quietly
and went herself to the post box a little way down the street; then she
came back and sobbed herself to sleep--though not until after she had
sobbed awake for long hours of wretchedness.

When she awoke in the morning, heavy-eyed and unrested, there came to
her first the vague horror of some shadow hanging over her, then the
sickening consciousness of what that shadow was. For one wild minute
Billy felt that she must run to the telephone, summon Bertram, and
beseech him to return unread the letter he would receive from her that
day. Then there came to her the memory of Bertram’s face as it had
looked the night before when she had asked him if she were the cause of
his being troubled. There came, too, the memory of Kate’s scathing
“Do you want to ruin his career?” Even the hated magazine article and
Marie’s tragic “I’ve _hindered_ him!” added their mite; and Billy knew
that she should not go to the telephone, nor summon Bertram.

The one fatal mistake now would be to let Bertram see her own distress.
If once he should suspect how she suffered in doing this thing, there
would be a scene that Billy felt she had not the courage to face. She
must, therefore, manage in some way not to see Bertram--not to let him
see her until she felt more sure of her self-control no matter what he
said. The easiest way to do this was, of course, to go away. But where?
How? She must think. Meanwhile, for these first few hours, she would not
tell any one, even Aunt Hannah, what had happened. There must _no one_
speak to her of it, yet. That she could not endure. Aunt Hannah would,
of course, shiver, groan “Oh, my grief and conscience!” and call for
another shawl; and Billy just now felt as if she should scream if she
heard Aunt Hannah say “Oh, my grief and conscience!”--over that. Billy
went down to breakfast, therefore, with a determination to act exactly
as usual, so that Aunt Hannah should not know--yet.

When people try to “act exactly as usual,” they generally end in acting
quite the opposite; and Billy was no exception to the rule. Hence her
attempted cheerfulness became flippantness, and her laughter giggles
that rang too frequently to be quite sincere--though from Aunt Hannah
it all elicited only an affectionate smile at “the dear child’s high
spirits.”

A little later, when Aunt Hannah was glancing over the morning
paper--now no longer barred from the door--she gave a sudden cry.

“Billy, just listen to this!” she exclaimed, reading from the paper in
her hand. “‘A new tenor in “The Girl of the Golden West.” Appearance
of Mr. M. J. Arkwright at the Boston Opera House to-night. Owing to the
sudden illness of Dubassi, who was to have taken the part of Johnson
tonight, an exceptional opportunity has come to a young tenor singer,
one of the most promising pupils at the Conservatory school. Arkwright
is said to have a fine voice, a particularly good stage presence, and
a purity of tone and smoothness of execution that few of his age and
experience can show. Only a short time ago he appeared as the duke at
one of the popular-priced Saturday night performances of “Rigoletto”;
and his extraordinary success on that occasion, coupled with his
familiarity with, and fitness for the part of Johnson in “The Girl
of the Golden West,” led to his being chosen to take Dubassi’s place
to-night. His performance is awaited with the greatest of interest.’ Now
isn’t that splendid for Mary Jane? I’m so glad!” beamed Aunt Hannah.

“Of course we’re glad!” cried Billy. “And didn’t it come just in time?
This is the last week of opera, anyway, you know.”

“But it says he sang before--on a Saturday night,” declared Aunt Hannah,
going back to the paper in her hand. “Now wouldn’t you have thought we’d
have heard of it, or read of it? And wouldn’t you have thought he’d have
told us?”

“Oh, well, maybe he didn’t happen to see us so he could tell us,”
 returned Billy with elaborate carelessness.

“I know it; but it’s so funny he _hasn’t_ seen us,” contended Aunt
Hannah, frowning. “You know how much he used to be here.”

Billy colored, and hurried into the fray.

“Oh, but he must have been so busy, with all this, you know. And of
course we didn’t see it in the paper--because we didn’t have any paper
at that time, probably. Oh, yes, that’s my fault, I know,” she laughed;
“and I was silly, I’ll own. But we’ll make up for it now. We’ll go, of
course, I wish it had been on our regular season-ticket night, but I
fancy we can get seats somewhere; and I’m going to ask Alice Greggory
and her mother, too. I’ll go down there this morning to tell them, and
to get the tickets. I’ve got it all planned.”

Billy had, indeed, “got it all planned.” She had been longing for
something that would take her away from the house--and if possible away
from herself. This would do the one easily, and might help on the other.
She rose at once.

“I’ll go right away,” she said.

“But, my dear,” frowned Aunt Hannah, anxiously, “I don’t believe I can
go to-night--though I’d love to, dearly.”

“But why not?”

“I’m tired and half sick with a headache this morning. I didn’t sleep,
and I’ve taken cold somewhere,” sighed the lady, pulling the top shawl a
little higher about her throat.

“Why, you poor dear, what a shame!”

“Won’t Bertram go?” asked Aunt Hannah.

Billy shook her head--but she did not meet Aunt Hannah’s eyes.

“Oh, no. I sha’n’t even ask him. He said last night he had a banquet
on for to-night--one of his art clubs, I believe.” Billy’s voice was
casualness itself.

“But you’ll have the Greggorys--that is, Mrs. Greggory _can_ go, can’t
she?” inquired Aunt Hannah.

“Oh, yes; I’m sure she can,” nodded Billy. “You know she went to the
operetta, and this is just the same--only bigger.”

“Yes, yes, I know,” murmured Aunt Hannah.

“Dear me! How can she get about so on those two wretched little sticks?
She’s a perfect marvel to me.”

“She is to me, too,” sighed Billy, as she hurried from the room.

Billy was, indeed, in a hurry. To herself she said she wanted to get
away--away! And she got away as soon as she could.

She had her plans all made. She would go first to the Greggorys’ and
invite them to attend the opera with her that evening. Then she would
get the tickets. Just what she would do with the rest of the day she did
not know. She knew only that she would not go home until time to dress
for dinner and the opera. She did not tell Aunt Hannah this, however,
when she left the house. She planned to telephone it from somewhere down
town, later. She told herself that she _could not_ stay all day under
the sharp eyes of Aunt Hannah--but she managed, nevertheless, to bid
that lady a particularly blithe and bright-faced good-by.


Billy had not been long gone when the telephone bell rang. Aunt Hannah
answered it.

“Why, Bertram, is that you?” she called, in answer to the words that
came to her across the wire. “Why, I hardly knew your voice!”

“Didn’t you? Well, is--is Billy there?”

“No, she isn’t. She’s gone down to see Alice Greggory.”

“Oh!” So evident was the disappointment in the voice that Aunt Hannah
added hastily:

“I’m so sorry! She hasn’t been gone ten minutes. But--is there any
message?”

“No, thank you. There’s no--message.” The voice hesitated, then went on
a little constrainedly. “How--how is Billy this morning? She--she’s all
right, isn’t she?”

Aunt Hannah laughed in obvious amusement.

“Bless your dear heart, yes, my boy! Has it been such a _long_ time
since last evening--when you saw her yourself? Yes, she’s all right. In
fact, I was thinking at the breakfast table how pretty she looked with
her pink cheeks and her bright eyes. She seemed to be in such high
spirits.”

An inarticulate something that Aunt Hannah could not quite catch
came across the line; then a somewhat hurried “All right. Thank you.
Good-by.”

The next time Aunt Hannah was called to the telephone, Billy spoke to
her.

“Aunt Hannah, don’t wait luncheon for me, please. I shall get it in
town. And don’t expect me till five o’clock. I have some shopping to
do.”

“All right, dear,” replied Aunt Hannah. “Did you get the tickets?”

“Yes, and the Greggorys will go. Oh, and Aunt Hannah!”

“Yes, dear.”

“Please tell John to bring Peggy around early enough to-night so we can
go down and get the Greggorys. I told them we’d call for them.”

“Very well, dear. I’ll tell him.”

“Thank you. How’s the poor head?”

“Better, a little, I think.”

“That’s good. Won’t you repent and go, too?”

“No--oh, no, indeed!”

“All right, then; good-by. I’m sorry!”

“So’m I. Good-by,” sighed Aunt Hannah, as she hung up the receiver and
turned away.

It was after five o’clock when Billy got home, and so hurried were the
dressing and the dinner that Aunt Hannah forgot to mention Bertram’s
telephone call till just as Billy was ready to start for the Greggorys’.

“There! and I forgot,” she confessed. “Bertram called you up just after
you left this morning, my dear.”

“Did he?” Billy’s face was turned away, but Aunt Hannah did not notice
that.

“Yes. Oh, he didn’t want anything special,” smiled the lady,
“only--well, he did ask if you were all right this morning,” she
finished with quiet mischief.

“Did he?” murmured Billy again. This time there was a little sound after
the words, which Aunt Hannah would have taken for a sob if she had not
known that it must have been a laugh.

Then Billy was gone.

At eight o’clock the doorbell rang, and a minute later Rosa came up
to say that Mr. Bertram Henshaw was down-stairs and wished to see Mrs.
Stetson.

Mrs. Stetson went down at once.

“Why, my dear boy,” she exclaimed, as she entered the room; “Billy said
you had a banquet on for to-night!”

“Yes, I know; but--I didn’t go.” Bertram’s face was pale and drawn. His
voice did not sound natural.

“Why, Bertram, you look ill! _Are_ you ill?” The man made an impatient
gesture.

“No, no, I’m not ill--I’m not ill at all. Rosa says--Billy’s not here.”

“No; she’s gone to the opera with the Greggorys.”

“The _opera!_” There was a grieved hurt in Bertram’s voice that
Aunt Hannah quite misunderstood. She hastened to give an apologetic
explanation.

“Yes. She would have told you--she would have asked you to join them,
I’m sure, but she said you were going to a banquet. I’m _sure_ she said
so.”

“Yes, I did tell her so--last night,” nodded Bertram, dully.

Aunt Hannah frowned a little. Still more anxiously she endeavored to
explain to this disappointed lover why his sweetheart was not at home to
greet him.

“Well, then, of course, my boy, she’d never think of your coming here
to-night; and when she found Mr. Arkwright was going to sing--”

“Arkwright!” There was no listlessness in Bertram’s voice or manner now.

“Yes. Didn’t you see it in the paper? Such a splendid chance for him!
His picture was there, too.”

“No. I didn’t see it.”

“Then you don’t know about it, of course,” smiled Aunt Hannah. “But he’s
to take the part of Johnson in ‘The Girl of the Golden West.’ Isn’t that
splendid? I’m so glad! And Billy was, too. She hurried right off this
morning to get the tickets and to ask the Greggorys.”

“Oh!” Bertram got to his feet a little abruptly, and held out his hand.
“Well, then, I might as well say good-by then, I suppose,” he suggested
with a laugh that Aunt Hannah thought was a bit forced. Before she could
remind him again, though, that Billy was really not to blame for not
being there to welcome him, he was gone. And Aunt Hannah could only go
up-stairs and meditate on the unreasonableness of lovers in general, and
of Bertram in particular.

Aunt Hannah had gone to bed, but she was still awake, when Billy came
home, so she heard the automobile come to a stop before the door, and
she called to Billy when the girl came upstairs.

“Billy, dear, come in here. I’m awake! I want to hear about it. Was it
good?”

Billy stopped in the doorway. The light from the hall struck her face.
There was no brightness in her eyes now, no pink in her cheeks.

“Oh, yes, it was good--very good,” she replied listlessly.

“Why, Billy, how queer you answer! What was the matter? Wasn’t Mary
Jane--all right?”

“Mary Jane? Oh!--oh, yes; he was very good, Aunt Hannah.”

“‘Very good,’ indeed!” echoed the lady, indignantly. “He must have
been!--when you speak as if you’d actually forgotten that he sang at
all, anyway!”

Billy had forgotten--almost. Billy had found that, in spite of her
getting away from the house, she had not got away from herself once, all
day. She tried now, however, to summon her acting powers of the morning.

“But it was splendid, really, Aunt Hannah,” she cried, with some show
of animation. “And they clapped and cheered and gave him any number of
curtain calls. We were so proud of him! But you see, I _am_ tired,” she
broke off wearily.

“You poor child, of course you are, and you look like a ghost! I won’t
keep you another minute. Run along to bed. Oh--Bertram didn’t go to that
banquet, after all. He came here,” she added, as Billy turned to go.

“Bertram!” The girl wheeled sharply.

“Yes. He wanted you, of course. I found I didn’t do, at all,” chuckled
Aunt Hannah. “Did you suppose I would?”

There was no answer. Billy had gone.


In the long night watches Billy fought it out with herself. (Billy had
always fought things out with herself.) She must go away. She knew that.
Already Bertram had telephoned, and called. He evidently meant to see
her--and she could not see him. She dared not. If she did--Billy knew
now how pitifully little it would take to make her actually _willing_ to
slay Bertram’s Art, stifle his Ambition, destroy his Inspiration, and be
a nuisance generally--if only she could have Bertram while she was doing
it all. Sternly then she asked herself if she had no pride; if she had
forgotten that it was because of her that the Winthrop portrait had not
been a success--because of her, either for the reason that he loved now
Miss Winthrop, or else that he loved no girl--except to paint.

Very early in the morning a white-faced, red-eyed Billy appeared at Aunt
Hannah’s bedside.

“Billy!” exclaimed Aunt Hannah, plainly appalled.

Billy sat down on the edge of the bed.

“Aunt Hannah,” she began in a monotonous voice as if she were reciting
a lesson she had learned by heart, “please listen, and please try not to
be too surprised. You were saying the other day that you would like to
visit your old home town. Well, I think that’s a very nice idea. If you
don’t mind we’ll go to-day.”

Aunt Hannah pulled herself half erect in bed.

“_To-day_--child?”

“Yes,” nodded Billy, unsmilingly. “We shall have to go somewhere to-day,
and I thought you would like that place best.”

“But--Billy!--what does this mean?”

Billy sighed heavily.

“Yes, I understand. You’ll have to know the rest, of course. I’ve broken
my engagement. I don’t want to see Bertram. That’s why I’m going away.”

Aunt Hannah fell nervelessly back on the pillow. Her teeth fairly
chattered.

“Oh, my grief and conscience--_Billy!_ Won’t you please pull up that
blanket,” she moaned. “Billy, what do you mean?”

Billy shook her head and got to her feet.

“I can’t tell any more now, really, Aunt Hannah. Please don’t ask me;
and don’t--talk. You _will_--go with me, won’t you?” And Aunt Hannah,
with her terrified eyes on Billy’s piteously agitated face, nodded her
head and choked:

“Why, of course I’ll go--anywhere--with you, Billy; but--why did you do
it, why did you do it?”

A little later, Billy, in her own room, wrote this note to Bertram:


     “DEAR BERTRAM:--I’m going away to-day.
     That’ll be best all around. You’ll agree to that,
     I’m sure. Please don’t try to see me, and please
     don’t write. It wouldn’t make either one of us
     any happier. You must know that.

             “As ever your friend,

                    “BILLY.”


Bertram, when he read it, grew only a shade more white, a degree more
sick at heart. Then he kissed the letter gently and put it away with the
other.

To Bertram, the thing was very clear. Billy had come now to the
conclusion that it would be wrong to give herself where she could not
give her heart. And in this he agreed with her--bitter as it was for
him. Certainly he did not want Billy, if Billy did not want him, he told
himself. He would now, of course, accede to her request. He would not
write to her--and make her suffer more. But to Bertram, at that moment,
it seemed that the very sun in the heavens had gone out.



CHAPTER XXXII. PETE TO THE RESCUE


One by one the weeks passed and became a month. Then other weeks became
other months. It was July when Billy, homesick and weary, came back to
Hillside with Aunt Hannah.

Home looked wonderfully good to Billy, in spite of the fact that she had
so dreaded to see it. Billy had made up her mind, however, that, come
sometime she must. She could not, of course, stay always away. Perhaps,
too, it would be just as easy at home as it was away. Certainly it could
not be any harder. She was convinced of that. Besides, she did not want
Bertram to think--

Billy had received only meagre news from Boston since she went away.
Bertram had not written at all. William had written twice--hurt,
grieved, puzzled, questioning letters that were very hard to answer.
From Marie, too, had come letters of much the same sort. By far the
cheeriest epistles had come from Alice Greggory. They contained, indeed,
about the only comfort Billy had known for weeks, for they showed very
plainly to Billy that Arkwright’s heart had been caught on the rebound;
and that in Alice Greggory he was finding the sweetest sort of balm for
his wounded feelings. From these letters Billy learned, too, that Judge
Greggory’s honor had been wholly vindicated; and, as Billy told Aunt
Hannah, “anybody could put two and two together and make four, now.”

It was eight o’clock on a rainy July evening that Billy and Aunt Hannah
arrived at Hillside; and it was only a little past eight that Aunt
Hannah was summoned to the telephone. When she came back to Billy she
was crying and wringing her hands.

Billy sprang to her feet.

“Why, Aunt Hannah, what is it? What’s the matter?” she demanded.

Aunt Hannah sank into a chair, still wringing her hands.

“Oh, Billy, Billy, how can I tell you, how can I tell you?” she moaned.

“You must tell me! Aunt Hannah, what is it?”

“Oh--oh--oh! Billy, I can’t--I can’t!”

“But you’ll have to! What is it, Aunt Hannah?”

“It’s--B-Bertram!”

“Bertram!” Billy’s face grew ashen. “Quick, quick--what do you mean?”

For answer, Aunt Hannah covered her face with her hands and began to sob
aloud. Billy, almost beside herself now with terror and anxiety, dropped
on her knees and tried to pull away the shaking hands.

“Aunt Hannah, you must tell me! You must--you must!”

“I can’t, Billy. It’s Bertram. He’s--_hurt!_” choked Aunt Hannah,
hysterically.

“Hurt! How?”

“I don’t know. Pete told me.”

“Pete!”

“Yes. Rosa had told him we were coming, and he called me up. He said
maybe I could do something. So he told me.”

“Yes, yes! But told you what?”

“That he was hurt.”

“How?”

“I couldn’t hear all, but I think ‘twas an accident--automobile. And,
Billy, Billy--Pete says it’s his arm--his right arm--and that maybe he
can’t ever p-paint again!”

“Oh-h!” Billy fell back as if the words had been a blow. “Not that, Aunt
Hannah--not that!”

“That’s what Pete said. I couldn’t get all of it, but I got that.
And, Billy, he’s been out of his head--though he isn’t now, Pete
says--and--and--and he’s been calling for you.”

“For--_me?_” A swift change came to Billy’s face.

“Yes. Over and over again he called for you--while he was crazy, you
know. That’s why Pete told me. He said he didn’t rightly understand what
the trouble was, but he didn’t believe there was any trouble, _really_,
between you two; anyway, that you wouldn’t think there was, if you could
hear him, and know how he wanted you, and--why, Billy!”

Billy was on her feet now. Her fingers were on the electric push-button
that would summon Rosa. Her face was illumined. The next moment Rosa
appeared.

“Tell John to bring Peggy to the door at once, please,” directed her
mistress.

“Billy!” gasped Aunt Hannah again, as the maid disappeared. Billy was
tremblingly putting on the hat she had but just taken off. “Billy, what
are you going to do?”

Billy turned in obvious surprise.

“Why, I’m going to Bertram, of course.”

“To Bertram! But it’s nearly half-past eight, child, and it rains, and
everything!”

“But Bertram _wants_ me!” exclaimed Billy. “As if I’d mind rain, or
time, or anything else, _now!_”

“But--but--oh, my grief and conscience!” groaned Aunt Hannah, beginning
to wring her hands again.

Billy reached for her coat. Aunt Hannah stirred into sudden action.

“But, Billy, if you’d only wait till to-morrow,” she quavered, putting
out a feebly restraining hand.

“To-morrow!” The young voice rang with supreme scorn. “Do you think I’d
wait till to-morrow--after all this? I say Bertram _wants_ me.” Billy
picked up her gloves.

“But you broke it off, dear--you said you did; and to go down there
to-night--like this--”

Billy lifted her head. Her eyes shone. Her whole face was a glory of
love and pride.

“That was before. I didn’t know. He _wants_ me, Aunt Hannah. Did
you hear? He _wants_ me! And now I won’t even--hinder him, if he
can’t--p-paint again!” Billy’s voice broke. The glory left her face. Her
eyes brimmed with tears, but her head was still bravely uplifted. “I’m
going to Bertram!”

Blindly Aunt Hannah got to her feet. Still more blindly she reached for
her bonnet and cloak on the chair near her.

“Oh, will you go, too?” asked Billy, abstractedly, hurrying to the
window to look for the motor car.

“Will I go, too!” burst out Aunt Hannah’s indignant voice. “Do you think
I’d let you go alone, and at this time of night, on such a wild-goose
chase as this?”

“I don’t know, I’m sure,” murmured Billy, still abstractedly, peering
out into the rain.

“Don’t know, indeed! Oh, my grief and conscience!” groaned Aunt Hannah,
setting her bonnet hopelessly askew on top of her agitated head.

But Billy did not even answer now. Her face was pressed hard against the
window-pane.



CHAPTER XXXIII. BERTRAM TAKES THE REINS


With stiffly pompous dignity Pete opened the door. The next moment
he fell back in amazement before the impetuous rush of a starry-eyed,
flushed-cheeked young woman who demanded:

“Where is he, Pete?”

“Miss Billy!” gasped the old man. Then he saw Aunt Hannah--Aunt Hannah
with her bonnet askew, her neck-bow awry, one hand bare, and the other
half covered with a glove wrong side out. Aunt Hannah’s cheeks, too,
were flushed, and her eyes starry, but with dismay and anger--the last
because she did not like the way Pete had said Miss Billy’s name. It was
one matter for her to object to this thing Billy was doing--but quite
another for Pete to do it.

“Of course it’s she!” retorted Aunt Hannah, testily. “As if you yourself
didn’t bring her here with your crazy messages at this time of night!”

“Pete, where is he?” interposed Billy. “Tell Mr. Bertram I am here--or,
wait! I’ll go right in and surprise him.”

“_Billy!_” This time it was Aunt Hannah who gasped her name.

Pete had recovered himself by now, but he did not even glance toward
Aunt Hannah. His face was beaming, and his old eyes were shining.

“Miss Billy, Miss Billy, you’re an angel straight from heaven, you
are--you are! Oh, I’m so glad you came! It’ll be all right now--all
right! He’s in the den, Miss Billy.”

Billy turned eagerly, but before she could take so much as one step
toward the door at the end of the hall, Aunt Hannah’s indignant voice
arrested her.

“Billy-stop! You’re not an angel; you’re a young woman--and a crazy
one, at that! Whatever angels do, young women don’t go unannounced and
unchaperoned into young men’s rooms! Pete, go tell your master that _we_
are here, and ask if he will receive _us_.”

Pete’s lips twitched. The emphatic “we” and “us” were not lost on him.
But his face was preternaturally grave when he spoke.

“Mr. Bertram is up and dressed, ma’am. He’s in the den. I’ll speak to
him.”

Pete, once again the punctilious butler, stalked to the door of
Bertram’s den and threw it wide open.

Opposite the door, on a low couch, lay Bertram, his head bandaged, and
his right arm in a sling. His face was turned toward the door, but his
eyes were closed. He looked very white, and his features were pitifully
drawn with suffering.

“Mr. Bertram,” began Pete--but he got no further. A flying figure
brushed by him and fell on its knees by the couch, with a low cry.

Bertram’s eyes flew open. Across his face swept such a radiant look of
unearthly joy that Pete sobbed audibly and fled to the kitchen. Dong
Ling found him there a minute later polishing a silver teaspoon with
a fringed napkin that had been spread over Bertram’s tray. In the hall
above Aunt Hannah was crying into William’s gray linen duster that hung
on the hall-rack--Aunt Hannah’s handkerchief was on the floor back at
Hillside.

In the den neither Billy nor Bertram knew or cared what had become of
Aunt Hannah and Pete. There were just two people in their world--two
people, and unutterable, incredible, overwhelming rapture and peace.
Then, very gradually it dawned over them that there was, after all,
something strange and unexplained in it all.

“But, dearest, what does it mean--you here like this?” asked Bertram
then. As if to make sure that she was “here, like this,” he drew her
even closer--Bertram was so thankful that he did have one arm that was
usable.

Billy, on her knees by the couch, snuggled into the curve of the one arm
with a contented little sigh.

“Well, you see, just as soon as I found out to-night that you wanted me,
I came,” she said.

“You darling! That was--” Bertram stopped suddenly. A puzzled frown
showed below the fantastic bandage about his head. “‘As soon as,’” he
quoted then scornfully. “Were you ever by any possible chance thinking I
_didn’t_ want you?”

Billy’s eyes widened a little.

“Why, Bertram, dear, don’t you see? When you were so troubled that
the picture didn’t go well, and I found out it was about me you were
troubled--I--”

“Well?” Bertram’s voice was a little strained.

“Why, of--of course,” stammered Billy, “I couldn’t help thinking that
maybe you had found out you _didn’t_ want me.”

“_Didn’t want you!_” groaned Bertram, his tense muscles relaxing. “May I
ask why?”

Billy blushed.

“I wasn’t quite sure why,” she faltered; “only, of course, I thought
of--of Miss Winthrop, you know, or that maybe it was because you didn’t
care for _any_ girl, only to paint--oh, oh, Bertram! Pete told us,” she
broke off wildly, beginning to sob.

“Pete told you that I didn’t care for any girl, only to paint?” demanded
Bertram, angry and mystified.

“No, no,” sobbed Billy, “not that. It was all the others that told
me that! Pete told Aunt Hannah about the accident, you know, and he
said--he said--Oh, Bertram, I _can’t_ say it! But that’s one of the
things that made me know I _could_ come now, you see, because I--I
wouldn’t hinder you, nor slay your Art, nor any other of those dreadful
things if--if you couldn’t ever--p-paint again,” finished Billy in an
uncontrollable burst of grief.

“There, there, dear,” comforted Bertram, patting the bronze-gold head
on his breast. “I haven’t the faintest idea what you’re talking
about--except the last; but I know there _can’t_ be anything that ought
to make you cry like that. As for my not painting again--you didn’t
understand Pete, dearie. That was what they were afraid of at
first--that I’d lose my arm; but that danger is all past now. I’m
loads better. Of course I’m going to paint again--and better than ever
before--_now!_”

Billy lifted her head. A look that was almost terror came to her eyes.
She pulled herself half away from Bertram’s encircling arm.

“Why, Billy,” cried the man, in pained surprise. “You don’t mean to say
you’re _sorry_ I’m going to paint again!”

“No, no! Oh, no, Bertram--never that!” she faltered, still regarding
him with fearful eyes. “It’s only--for _me_, you know. I _can’t_ go back
now, and not have you--after this!--even if I do hinder you, and--”

“_Hinder me!_ What are you talking about, Billy?”

Billy drew a quivering sigh.

“Well, to begin with, Kate said--”

“Good heavens! Is Kate in _this_, too?” Bertram’s voice was savage now.

“Well, she wrote a letter.”

“I’ll warrant she did! Great Scott, Billy! Don’t you know Kate by this
time?”

“Y-yes, I said so, too. But, Bertram, what she wrote was true. I found
it everywhere, afterwards--in magazines and papers, and even in Marie.”

“Humph! Well, dearie, I don’t know yet what you found, but I do know you
wouldn’t have found it at all if it hadn’t been for Kate--and I wish I
had her here this minute!”

Billy giggled hysterically.

“I don’t--not _right_ here,” she cooed, nestling comfortably against
her lover’s arm. “But you see, dear, she never _has_ approved of the
marriage.”

“Well, who’s doing the marrying--she, or I?” “That’s what I said,
too--only in another way,” sighed Billy. “But she called us flyaway
flutterbudgets, and she said I’d ruin your career, if I did marry you.”

“Well, I can tell you right now, Billy, you will ruin it if you don’t!”
 declared Bertram. “That’s what ailed me all the time I was painting that
miserable portrait. I was so worried--for fear I’d lose you.”

“Lose me! Why, Bertram Henshaw, what do you mean?”

A shamed red crept to the man’s forehead.

“Well, I suppose I might as well own up now as any time. I was scared
blue, Billy, with jealousy of--Arkwright.”

Billy laughed gayly--but she shifted her position and did not meet her
lover’s eyes.

“Arkwright? Nonsense!” she cried. “Why, he’s going to marry Alice
Greggory. I know he is! I can see it as plain as day in her letters.
He’s there a lot.”

“And you never did think for a minute, Billy, that you cared for him?”
 Bertram’s gaze searched Billy’s face a little fearfully. He had not been
slow to mark that swift lowering of her eyelids. But Billy looked him
now straight in the face--it was a level, frank gaze of absolute truth.

“Never, dear,” she said firmly. (Billy was so glad Bertram had turned
the question on _her_ love instead of Arkwright’s!) “There has never
really been any one but you.”

“Thank God for that,” breathed Bertram, as he drew the bright head
nearer and held it close.

After a minute Billy stirred and sighed happily.

“Aren’t lovers the beat’em for imagining things?” she murmured.

“They certainly are.”

“You see--I wasn’t in love with Mr. Arkwright.”

“I see--I hope.”

“And--and you didn’t care _specially_ for--for Miss Winthrop?”

“Eh? Well, no!” exploded Bertram. “Do you mean to say you really--”

Billy put a soft finger on his lips.

“Er--‘people who live in _glass houses_,’ you know,” she reminded him,
with roguish eyes.

Bertram kissed the finger and subsided.

“Humph!” he commented.

There was a long silence; then, a little breathlessly, Billy asked:

“And you don’t--after all, love me--just to paint?”

“Well, what is that? Is that Kate, too?” demanded Bertram, grimly.

Billy laughed.

“No--oh, she said it, all right, but, you see, _everybody_ said that to
me, Bertram; and that’s what made me so--so worried sometimes when you
talked about the tilt of my chin, and all that.”

“Well, by Jove!” breathed Bertram.

There was another silence. Then, suddenly, Bertram stirred.

“Billy, I’m going to marry you to-morrow,” he announced decisively.

Billy lifted her head and sat back in palpitating dismay.

“Bertram! What an absurd idea!”

“Well, I am. I don’t _know_ as I can trust you out of my sight till
_then!_ You’ll read something, or hear something, or get a letter from
Kate after breakfast to-morrow morning, that will set you ‘saving me’
again; and I don’t want to be saved--that way. I’m going to marry you
to-morrow. I’ll get--” He stopped short, with a sudden frown. “Confound
that law! I forgot. Great Scott, Billy, I’ll have to trust you five
days, after all! There’s a new law about the license. We’ve _got_ to
wait five days--and maybe more, counting in the notice, and all.”

Billy laughed softly.

“Five days, indeed, sir! I wonder if you think I can get ready to be
married in five days.”


“Don’t want you to get ready,” retorted Bertram, promptly. “I saw Marie
get ready, and I had all I wanted of it. If you really must have all
those miles of tablecloths and napkins and doilies and lace rufflings
we’ll do it afterwards,--not before.”

“But--”

“Besides, I _need_ you to take care of me,” cut in Bertram, craftily.

“Bertram, do you--really?”

The tender glow on Billy’s face told its own story, and Bertram’s eager
eyes were not slow to read it.

“Sweetheart, see here, dear,” he cried softly, tightening his good left
arm. And forthwith he began to tell her how much he did, indeed, need
her.


“Billy, my dear!” It was Aunt Hannah’s plaintive voice at the doorway,
a little later. “We must go home; and William is here, too, and wants to
see you.”

Billy rose at once as Aunt Hannah entered the room.

“Yes, Aunt Hannah, I’ll come; besides”--she glanced at Bertram
mischievously--“I shall need all the time I’ve got to prepare for--my
wedding.”

“Your wedding! You mean it’ll be before--October?” Aunt Hannah glanced
from one to the other uncertainly. Something in their smiling faces sent
a quick suspicion to her eyes.

“Yes,” nodded Billy, demurely. “It’s next Tuesday, you see.”

“Next Tuesday! But that’s only a week away,” gasped Aunt Hannah.

“Yes, a week.”

“But, child, your trousseau--the wedding--the--the--a week!” Aunt Hannah
could not articulate further.

“Yes, I know; that is a good while,” cut in Bertram, airily. “We wanted
it to-morrow, but we had to wait, on account of the new license law.
Otherwise it wouldn’t have been so long, and--”

But Aunt Hannah was gone. With a low-breathed “Long! Oh, my grief and
conscience--_William!_” she had fled through the hall door.

“Well, it _is_ long,” maintained Bertram, with tender eyes, as he
reached out his hand to say good-night.





*** End of this LibraryBlog Digital Book "Miss Billy's Decision" ***

Copyright 2023 LibraryBlog. All rights reserved.



Home